I 7, In memory of Elijah Jordan 1875-1953 "omne immensum peragravit mente animoque" cp.2- Return this book on or before the Latest Date stamped below. Theft, mutilation, and underlining oj f book. a"e reasons for disciplinary action and may Jesuit in dismissal from the Umv.rs.ty. University of Illinois Library . .'v 1AUP DEC i L161 0-1096 THE SYSTEM OE NATURE: OR, LAWS OF THE MORAL AND PHYSICAL WOBLD, BY BARON D'HOLBACH ' AUTHOR OF "GOOD SENSE," ETC. NEW AND IMPROVED EDITION, WTH NOTES BY DIDEROT. TRANSLATED, FOR THE FIRST TIME, BY H. D. ROBINSON. TWO VOLUMES IN ONE. YOL. T. STEREOTYPE EDITION. BOSTON: PUBLISHED BY J. P. MENDUM 84 Washington Street. 1868. ENTERED, according to Act of Congress, in the THE PROPRIETOR Clerk's Office of the District Court of the Southern District of New York. k u / ADVERTISEMENT. TO THE PUBLIC. To expose superstition, the ignorance and credulity on which it is based, and to ameliorate the condition of the human race, is the ardent desire of every philanthropic mind. Mankind are unhappy, in proportion as they are deluded by imag- inary systems of theology. Taught to attach much importance to belief in religious doctrines, and to mere forms and ceremonies of re- ligious worship, the slightest disagreement among theological dogma- tists is oftentimes sufficient to inflame their minds, already excited by bigotry, and to lead them to anathematize and destroy each other with- out pity, mercy, or remorse. The various theological systems in which mankind have been mis- led to have faith, are but fables and falsehoods imposed by visionaries and fanatics on the ignorant, the weak, and th? credulous, as historical truths ; and for unbelief of which, millions have perished at the stake, or pined in gloomy dungeons : and such will ever be the case, until the - mists of superstition, and the influence of priestcraft, are exposed by the light of knowledge and the power of truth. Many honest and talented philanthropists have directed their powerful intellects against the religious dogmas which have caused so much misery and persecution among mankind. Owing, however, to the combined power and influence of kings and priests, many of - those learned and liberal works have been either destroyed or buried in oblivion, and the characters of the writers assailed by the unsparing and relentless rancour of pious abuse. To counteract and destroy, if possible, these sources of mischief and misery, is the intention of the publisher in issuing the SYSTK.M OF NATURE ; and this truly able work of a celebrated author, whose writings, owing to religious intolerance, have been kept in compar- ative obscurity, is now offered to the public in a form which unites the various advantages of neatness of typography and cheapness of price. The publisher commends to all Liberals this translation of BARON d'HoLBACH's SYSTEM OF NATURE, because it is estimated as one of IV ADVERTISEMENT the most able expositions of theological absurdities which has ever been written. It is in reality a System of Nature. Man is here con- sidered in all his relations both to his own species and those spiritual beings which are supposed to exist ui the imaginary Utopia of religious devotees. This great work strikes at the root of all the errours anc 1 evil consequences of religious superstition and intolerance. It incul- cates the purest morality ; instructing us to be kind one to another, in order to live happily in each other's society to be tolerant and for- bearing, because belief is involuntary, and mankind are so organized that all cannot think alike to be indulgent and benevolent, because kindness begets kindness, and hence each individual becomes inter- ested for the happiness of every other, and thus all contribute to human felicity. Let those who declare the immorality of sceptical writings, read the System of Nature, and they will be undeceived. They will then learn that the calumniated sceptics are incited by no other motives than the most praiseworthy benevolence ; that far from endeavouring to increase that misery which is incidental to human life, they only wish to heal the animosities caused by religious dissensions, and to show men that their true polar star is to be happy, and endeavour to render others so. But above all, let those read this work who seek to come at a " knowledge of the truth ;" let those read it whose minds are har- assed by the fear of death, or troubled by the horrible tales of a sanguinary and vengeful God. Let them read this work, and their doubts will vanish if there is any potency in the spear of Ithuriel. If the most profound logic, the acutest discrimination, the keenest and most caustic sarcasm, can reflect credit on an author, then we may justly hail Baron d'Holbach as the greatest among philosophers, and an honour to infidels. He is the author of many celebrated works be- sides the SYSTEM OF NATURE,* among which we may number, GOOD SENSE, THE NATURAL HISTORY OF SUPERSTITION, LETTERS TO EUGENIA, and other famous publications. He is described by bio- graphers as " a man of great and varied talents, generous and kind- hearted."! And the Reverend Laurence Sterne, informs us in his Letters, that he was rich, generous, and learned, keeping an open house several days in the week for indigent scholars. Davenpoit, ubi sup., page 324, says, " His works are numerous, and were all pub- lished anonymously." It is, no doubt on this account that the Sys- teme de la Nature was first attributed to Helvetius, and then to Mira- * A person by the name of Robinet, wrote a work of a similar tendency, called De la Nature, which should not be confounded with that of Baron d Holbach. t -Vide R. A. Davenport's Dictionary of Biography, Boston edition, page 324, Article, HOLBACH. Perhaps it may be well to add that he Avas born in 1723, in Heidesheim, Germany, though he Avas educated at Paris, Avhere he spent the greatest part of his life. He Avas a distinguished member of many European academies, and peculiarly conversant with mineralogy. He died in 1789. ADVERTISEMENT. V beau. But this important question has been set to rest by Baron Grimm, from whose celebrated correspondence we make the following extracts, under the date of August 10th, 1789: " I became acquainted with the Baron d'Holbach only a few years before his death ; but, to know him, and to feel that esteem and ven- eration with which -his noble character inspired his friends, a long ac- quaintance was not necessary. I therefore shall endeavour to portray him as he appeared to me ; and I fain would persuade myself, that if his manes could hear me, they would be pleased with the frankness and simplicity of my homage. " I have never mtt with a man more learned I may add, more universally learned, than the Baron d'Holbach ; and I have never seen any one who cared so little to pass for learned in the eyes of the world. Had it not been for the sincere interest he took in the pro- gress of science, and a longing to impart to others what he thought might be useful to them, the world would always have remained ig- norant of his vast erudition. His learning, like his fortune, he gave away, but never crouched to public opinion. " The French nation is indebted to Baron d'Holbach for its rapid progress in natural history and chymistry. It was he who, 30 years ago, translated the best works published by the Germans on both these sciences, till then, scarcely known, or at least, very much neglected in France. His translations are enriched with valuable notes, but those who availed themselves of his labour ignored to whom they were indebted for it ; and even now it is scarcely known. ' There is no longer any indiscretion in stating that Baron d'Hol- bach is the author of the work which, eighteen years ago, made so much noise in Europe, of the far-famed SYSTEM OF NATURE. His self-love was never seduced by the lofty reputation his work obtained. If he was so fortunate as to escape suspicion, he was more indebted for it. to his own modesty, than to the prudence and discretion of his friends. As to myself, I do not like the doctrines taught in that work, but those who have known the author, will, in justice, admit, that no private consideration induced him to advocate that system : he became its apostle with a purity of intention, and an abnegation of self, which in the eyes of faith, would have done honour to the apostles of the holiest religion. " His Systeme Social, and his Morale Universelle, did not create the same sensation as the Systeme de la Nature ; but those two works show that, after having pulled down what human weakness had erected as a barrier to vice, the author felt the necessity of rebuilding another founded on the progress of reason, a good education, and wholesome laws. " It was natural for the Baron d'Holbach to believe in the empire of reason, for his passions (and we always judge others by ourselves), were such, as in all cases to give the ascendency to virtue and correct principles. It was impossible for him to hate any one ; yet he could not, without an effort, dissjjnulate his profound horrour for priests, the Vl ADV .xtlSEMENT. panders of despotism, and the promoters of superstition. Whenever he spoke of these, his naturally good temper forsook him. " Among his friends, the Baron d'Holbach numbered the celebrated Heivetius, Diderot, d'Alembert, Naigeon, Condillac, Turgot, Buffon, J. J. Rousseau, Voltaire, &c. ; and in other countries, such men as Hume, Garrick, the Abbate Galiani, &c. If so distinguished and learned a society was calculated to give more strength and expansion to his mind, it has also been justly remarked, that %hose illustrious men could not but learn many curious and useful things from him ; for he possessed an extensive library, and the tenacity of his memory was such as to enable him to remember without effort every thing he had once read." However, the most praiseworthy feature in d'Holbach's character, was his benevolence ; and we now conclude this sketch with the fol- lowing pithy anecdote related by Mr. Naigeon, in the Journal of Paris : " Among those who frequented d'Holbach's house, was a literary gentleman, who, for some time past, appeared musing and in deep melancholy. Pained to see his friend in that state, d'Holbach called on him. ' I do not wish,' said d'Holbach, ' to pry into a secret you did not wish to confide to me, but I see you are sorrowful, and your situation makes me both uneasy and unhappy. I know you are not rich, and you may have wants which you have hid from me. I bring you ten thousand francs which are of no use to me. You will cer- tainly not refuse them if you feel any friendship for me ; and by-and- by, when you find yourself in better circumstances, you will return them.' This friend, moved to tears by the generosity of the action, assured him that he did not want money, that his chagrin had another cause, and therefore could not accept his offer ; but he never forgot the kindness which prompted it, and to him I am indebted for the facts I have just related. We have no apologies to make for republishing the System of Nature at this time ; the work will support itself, and needs no advo- cate ; it has never been answered, because, in truth, it is, indeed, un- answerable. It demonstrates the fallacy as well of the religion of the Pagan as the Jew the Christian as the Mahometan. It is a guide alike to the philosopher emancipated from religious thraldom, and the poor votary misled by the follies of superstition. All Christian writers on Natural Theology have studiously avoided even the mention of this masterly production : knowing their utter in- ability to cope with its powerful reasoning, they have wisely passed it by in silence. Henry Lord Brougham, it is true, in his recent Discourse of Natural Theology, has mentioned this extraordinary treatise, but with what care does he evade entering the lists with this distinguished writer ! He passes over the work with a haste and sophistry that indicates how fully conscious he was of his own weak- ness and his opponent's strength. " There is no book of an Atheistical ADVERTISE. INT. VU description," says his lordship, " which has ever made a greater im- pression than the famous Systeme de la Nature" ***** " It is impossible to deny the merits of the Systeme de la Nature. The work of a great writer it unquestionably is ; but its merit lies in the extraordinary eloquence of the composition, and the skill with which words are substituted for ideas ; and assumptions for proofs, are made to pass current," &c. It is with a few pages of such empty de- clamation that his lordship attacks and condemns this eloquent and 'logical work.* We do not wish to detain the reader longer from its perusal by lengthening out our preface, and have only to remark, in conclusion, that when Baron d'Holbach finished this work, he might have said with more truth, and far less vanity than Horace : " Exegi monumentum asre perennius, Regalique situ pyramidum altius ; Quod non imber edax, non Aquilo impotcns Possit diruere, aut innumerabilis Annorum series, et fuga temporum." et seq. Q, Hor. Flac. Car. Lib. III. 30, v. 1-5. * Vide A Discourse of Natural Theology, by Henry Lord Brougham, F.R.S., &c. Philadelphia: Carey, Lea, and Blanchard. 1835. Pages 14G and 147. AUTHOR'S PREFACE THE source of man's unhappiness is his ignorance of Nature. The pertinacity with which he clings to blind opinions imbibed in his in- fancy, which interweave themselves with his existence, the consequent prejudice that warps his mind, that prevents its expansion, that renders him the slave of fiction, appears to doom him to continual errour. He resembles a child destitute of experience, full of idle notions : a dan- gerous leaven mixes itself with all his knowledge : it is of necessity obscure, it is vacillating and false : He takes the tone of his ideas on the authority of others, who are themselves in errour, or else have an interest in deceiving him. To remove this Cimmerian darkness, these barriers to the improvement of his condition ; to disentangle him from the clouds of errour that envelop him, that obscure the path he ought to tread ; to guide him out of this Cretan labyrinth, requires the clue of Ariadne, with all the love she could bestow on Theseus. It exacts more than common exertion ; it needs a most determined, a most undaunted courage it is never effected but by a persevering resolu- tion to act, to think for himself; to examine with rigour and imparti- ality the opinions he has adopted. He will find that the most noxious weeds have sprung up beside beautiful flowers ; entwined themselves around their stems, overshadowed them with an exuberance of foliage, choked the ground, enfeebled their growth, diminished their petals, dimmed the brilliancy of their colours ; that deceived by the apparent freshness of their verdure, by the rapidity of their exfoliation, he has given them cultivation, watered them, nurtured them, when he ought to have plucked out their very roots. Man seeks to range out of his sphere : notwithstanding the reiterated checks his ambitious folly experiences, he still attempts the impossi- ble ; strives to carry his researches beyond the visible world ; and hunts out misery in imaginary regions. He would be a metaphysician be- fore he has become a practical philosopher. He quits the contempla- tion of realities to meditate on chimeras. He neglects experience to feed on conjecture, to indulge in hypothesis. He dares not cultivate his reason, because from his earliest days he has been taught to con- sider it criminal. He pretends to know his fate in the indistinct abodes of another life, before he has considered of the means by which he is to render himself happy in the world he inhabits : in short, man dis- AUTHORS PREFACE. ix dams the study of Nature, except it be partially : he pursues phantoms that resemble an ignis-fatuus, which at once dazzle, bewilder, and affright : like the benighted traveller led astray by these deceptive ex- halations of a swampy soil, he frequently quits the plain, the simple road of truth, by pursuing of which, he can alone ever reasonably hope to reach .the goal of happiness. The most important of our duties, then, is to seek means by which we may destroy delusions that can never do more than mislead us. The remedies for these evils must be sought for in Nature herself ; it is only in the abundance of her resources, that we can rationally ex- pect to find antidotes to the mischiefs brought upon us by an ill-di- rected, by an overpowering enthusiasm. It is time these remedies were sought ; it is time to look the evil boldly in the face, to examine its foundations, to scrutinize its superstructure : reason, with its faithful guide experience, must attack N in their entrenchments those prejudices to which the human race has but too long been the victim. For this purpose reason must be restored to its proper rank, it must be rescued From the evil company with which it is associated. It has been too long degraded too long neglected cowardice has rendered it subser- vient to delirium, the slave to falsehood. It must no longer be held down by the massive chains of ignorant prejudice. Truth is invariable it is requisite to man it can never harm him his very necessities, sooner or later, make him sensible of this ; obljge him to acknowledge it. Let us then discover it to mortals let us ex- hibit its charms -let us shed its effulgence over the darkened road ; it is the only mode by which man can become disgusted with that dis- graceful superstition which leads him into errour, and which but too often usurps his homage by treacherously covering itself with the mask of truth its lustre can wound none but those enemies to the human race whose power is bottomed solely on the ignorance, on the dark- ness in which they have in almost every climate contrived to involve the mind of man. Truth speaks not to these perverse beings : her voice can only be heard by generous minds accustomed to reflection, whose sensibilities make them lament the numberless calamities showered on the earth by political and religious tyranny whose enlightened minds contem- plate with horrour the immensity, the ponderosity of that series of mis- fortunes with which errour has in all ages overwhelmed mankind. To errour must be attributed those insupportable chains which tyrants, which priests have forged for all nations. To errour must be equally attributed that abject slavery into .which the people of almost every country have fallen. Nature designed they should pursue their hap- piness by the most perfect freedom. To errour must be attributed those religious terrours which, in almost every climate, have either pe- trified man with fear, or caused him to destroy himself for coarse or fanciful beings. . To errour must be attributed those inveterate hatreds, those barbarous persecutions, those numerous massacres, those Jread- 2 X AUTHOR'S PREFACE. ful tragedies, of which, under pretext of serving the interests of heaven, the earth has been but too frequently made the theatre. It is errour consecrated by religious enthusiasm, which produces that ignorance, that uncertainty in which man ever finds himself with regard to his most evident duties, his clearest rights, the most demonstrable truths. In short, man is almost every where a poor degraded captive, devoid either of greatness of soul, of reason, or of virtue, whom his inhuman gaolers have never permitted to see the light of day. Let us then endeavour to disperse those clouds of ignorance, those mists of darkness which impede man on his journey, which obscure his progress, which prevent his marching through life with a firm, with a steady step. Let us try to inspire him with courage with respect for his reason with an inextinguishable love for truth to the end that he may learn to know himself to know his legitimate rights that he may learn to consult his experience, and no longer be the dupe of an imagination led astray by authority that he may renounce the prejudices of his childhood that he may learn to found his morals on his nature, on his wants, on the real advantage of society that he may dare to love himself that he may learn to pursue his true happiness by promoting that of others in short, that he may no longer occupy himself with reveries either use- less or dangerous that he may become a virtuous, a rational being, in which case he cannot fail to. become happy. If he must have his chimeras, let him at least learn to permit others to form theirs alter their own fashion ; since nothing can be more im- material than the manner of men's thinking on subjects not accessible to reason, provided those thoughts be not suffered to imbody them- selves into actions injurious to others : above all, let him be fully per- suaded that it is of the utmost importance to the inhabitants of this world to be JUST, KIND, and PEACEABLE. Far from injuring the cause of virtue, an impartial examination of the principles of this work will show that its object is to restore truth to its proper temple, to build up an altar whose foundations shall be consolidated by morality, reason, and justice : from this sacred fane, virtue guarded by truth, clothed with experience, shall shed forth her radiance on delighted mortals ; whose homage flowing consecutively shah 1 open to the world a new era, by rendering general the belief that happiness, the true end of man's existence, can never be attained but BY PROMOTING THAT OF HIS FELLOW CREATURE. In conclusion : Warned by old age and weak limbs that death is fast approaching, the author protests most solemnly that, in his labours, his sole object has been to promote the happiness of his fellow crea- tures ; and his only ambition, to merit the approbation of the few partizans of Truth who honestly and sincerely seek her. He writes not for those who are deaf to the voice of reason, who judge of things only by their vile interest or fatal prejudices : his cold "remains will fear neither their clamours nor their resentments, so terrible to those who, whilst living, dare proclaim the TRUTH. THE SYSf EM OF NATURE. OF NATURE AND HER LAWS OF MAN OF THE SOUL AND ITS FACULTIES OF THK DOCTRINE OF IMMORTALITY ON HAPPINESS. CHAPTER I. Of Nature. MEN will always deceive themselves by abandoning experience to follow imaginary systems. Man is the work of Nature : he exists in Nature : he is submitted to her laws : he cannot de- liver himself from them ; nor can he step beyond them even in thought. It is in vain his mind would spring for- ward beyond the visible world, an im- perious necessity always compels his return. For a being formed by Nature, and circumscribed by her laws, there ex- ists nothing beyond the great whole of which he forms a part, of which he ex- .jeriences the influence. The beings which he pictures to himself as above nature, or.distinguished from her, are always chimeras formed after that which he has already seen, but of which it is impossible he should ever form any correct idea, either as to the place they occupy, or of their manner of acting. There is not, there can be nothing out of that Nature which in- cludes all beings. Instead, therefore, of seeking out of the world he inhabits for beings who ran procure him a happiness denied tcr him bv Nature, let man study this Na- ture, let him learn her laws, contem- plate her energies, observe the immuta- ble rules by which she acts : let him apply these discoveries to his own feli- city and submit in silence to her man- dates, which nothing can alter : let him cheerfully consent to ignore causes hid from him by an impenetrable veil : let him without murmuring yield to the decrees of a universal necessity, which can never be brought within his comprehension, nor ever emancipate him from those laws imposed oil him by his essence. The distinction which has been so often made between the physical and the moral man is evidently an abuse of terms. Man is a being purely phy- sical : the moral man is nothing more than this physical being considered under a certain point of view, that is to say, with relation to some of his modes of action, arising out of his par- ticular organization. But is not this organization itself the work of Nature ? The motion or impulse to action of which he is susceptible, is that not phy- sical ? His visible actions, as well as the invisible motion interiorly excited by his will or his thoughts, are equally the natural effects, the necessary con- sequences, of his peculiar mechanism, and the impulse he receives from those beings by whom he is surrounded. All that the human mind has successively invented with a view to change or perfect his being, and to render him- self more happy, was only a neces- sary consequence of man's peculiar essence,, and that of the beings who act upon him. The object of all his in- stitutions, of all his reflections, of all his knowledge, is only to procure that happiness towards which he is inces- santly impelled by the peculiarity of his nature. All that .he does, all that he thinks, all that he'is, all that he will be, is nothing more than Avhat Universal Nature has made him. His ideas, his will, his actions, are the necessary ef- fects of tkose qualities infused into him by Nature, and of those circum- stances in which she has placed him. In short, art is nothing but Nature act- ing with the tools she has made. Nature sends man naked and desti- tute into this world which is to be his abode: he quickly learns to cover his nakedness, to shelter himself from the inclemency of the weather, first with 12 OF NATURE. rude huts and the skins of the beasts of the forest ; by degrees he mends their appearance, renders them more con- venient : he establishes manufactories of cloth, of cotton, of silk ; he digs clay, gold, and other fossils from the bowels of the earth, converts them into bricks for his house, into vessels for his use, gradually improves their shape, aug- ments their beauty. To a being ele- vated above our terrestrial globe, who should contemplate the human species through all the changes he undergoes in his progress towards civilization, man would not appear less subjected to the laws of Nature when naked in the forest painfully seeking his susten- ance, than when living in civilized so- ciety surrounded with comforts ; that is to say, enriched with greater experi- ence, plunged in luxury, where he every day invents a thousand neAV wants and discovers a thousand new modes of satisfying them. All the steps taken by man to regulate his existence, ought only to be considered as a long succes- sion of causes and effects, which are nothing more than the development of the first impulse given him by nature. The same animal by virtue of his organization passes successively from the most simple to the most complica- ted wants ; it is nevertheless the con- sequence of his nature. The butterfly whose beauty we admire, whose colours are so rich, whose appearance is so brilliant, commences as an inanimate unattractive egg ; from this, heat pro- duces a worm, this becomes a chrysalis, then changes into that winged insect decorated with the most vivid tints : ar- rived at this stage he reproduces, he propagates : at last despoiled of his or- naments he is obliged to disappear, having fulfilled the , task imposed on him by Nature, having described the circle of mutation marked out for beings of his order. The same progress, the same change takes place in vegetables. It is by a succession of combinations originally interwoven with the energies of the aloe, that this plant is insensibly regu- lated, gradually expanded, and at the end of a great number of years pro- duces those flowers which announce its dissolution. It is equally so with man, who in all his motion, all the changes he un- dergoes, never acts but according to laws peculiar to his organization, and to the matter of which he is composed. The physical man, is he who acts by causes our senses make us under- stand. The moral man, is he who acts by physical causes, with which our preju- dices preclude us from becoming ac- quainted. The wild man, is a child destitute of experience, who is incapable of pur- suing his happiness, because he has not learnt how to oppose resistance to the impulses he receives from those beings by whom he is surrounded. The civilized man, is he whom ex- perience and social life have enabled to draw from nature the means of his own happiness ; because he has learned to oppose resistance to those impulses he receives from exterior beings, when ex- perience has taught him they would be injurious to his welfare. The enlightened man, is man in his maturity, in his perfection ; who is ca- pable of pursuing his own happiness ; because he has learned to examine, to think for himself, and not to take that for truth upon the authority of others, which experience has taught him ex- amination will frequently prove errone- ous. The happy man, is he who knows how to enjoy the benefits of nature > in other words, he who thinks for him- self; who is thankful for the good he possesses ; who does not envy the wel- fare of others ; who does not sigh after imaginary benefits always beyond his grasp. The unhappy man, is he who is in- capacitated to enjoy the benefits d'f na- ture ; that is, he who suffers others to think for him ; who neglects the abso- lute good he possesses, in a fruitless search after imaginary benefits ; who vainly sighs after that which ever eludes his pursuit. It necessarily results, that man in his researches ought always to fall back- on experience, and natural philosophy : These are what he should consult in his religion in his morals in his le- gislation in his political government in the arts in the sciences in his pleasures in his misfortunes. Ex- perience teaches that Nature acts by simple, uniform, and invariable laws. OF NATURE. 13 It is by his senses man is bound to this universal Nature ; it is by his senses he must penetrate her secrets ; it is from his senses he must draw experience of her laws. Whenever, therefore, he either fails to acquire experience or quits its path, he stum- bles into an abyss, his imagination leads him astray. All the errours of man are physical errours : he never deceives himself but when he neglects to return back to na- ture, to consult her laws, to call experi- ence to his aid. It is for want of experi- ence he forms such imperfect ideas of matter, of its properties, of its combina- tions, of its power, of its mode of action, or of the energies Avhich spring from its essence. Wanting this experience, the whole universe to him is but one vast scene of illusion. The most ordinary results appear to him the most astonish- ing phenomena ; he wonders at every thing, understands nothing, and yields the guidance of his actions to those in- terested in betraying his interests. He is ignorant of Nature, he has mistaken her laws ; he has not contemplated the necessary routine which she has marked out for every thing she con- tains. Mistaken the laws of Nature, did I say 1 He has mistaken himself: the consequence is, that all his sys- tems, all his conjectures, all his rea- sonings, from which he has banished experience, are nothing more than a tissue of errours, a long chain of ab- surdities. All errour is prejudicial: it is by de- ceiving himself that man is plunged in mi.sery. He neglected Nature ; he understood not her laws ; he formed gods of the most preposterous kinds : these became the sole objects of his hope, the creatures of his fear, and he trembled under these visionary deities ; under the supposed influence of im- aginary beings created by himself; under the terrour inspired by blocks of stone ; by logs of wood ; by flying fish ; or else under the frowns of men, mortal as himself, whom his distemper- ed fancy had elevated above that Nature of which alone he is capable of form- ing any idea. His very posterity laughs to scorn his folly, because ex- perience has convinced them of the absurdity of his groundless fears, of his misplaced worship. Thus has passed away the ancient mythology, with all the trumpery attributes at- tached to it by ignorance.* Man did not understand that Nature, equal in her distributions, entirely destitute of goodness or malice, fol- lows only necessary and immutable laws, when she either produces beings or destroys them, when she causes those to suffer, whose organization creates sensibility ; when shu scatters among them good and evil ; when she subjects them to incessant change he did not perceive it was in the bosom of Nature herself, that it was in her abundance he ought to seek to satisfy his wants ; for remedies against his pains ; for the means of rendering himself happy : he expected to derive these benefits from imaginary beings, whom he erroneously imagin- ed to be the authors of his pleasures, the cause of his misfortunes. From hence it is clear that to his ignorance of Nature, man owes the creation of those illusive powers under which 1 he has so long trembled with fear ; that superstitious worship, which has been the source of all his misery. For want of clearly understanding his own peculiar nature, his proper ten- dency, his wants, and his rights, man has fallen in society, from FREEDOM into SLAVERY. He had forgotten the design of his existence, or else he be- lieved himself obliged to smother the natural desires of his heart, and to sacri- fice his welfare to the caprice of chiefs, either elected by himsell, or submitted to without examination. He was ig- norant of the true policy of association of the true object of government ; ho disdained to listen to the voice of Nature, which loudly proclaimed that the price of all submission is protection and * It is impossible to peruse the ancient and modern theological works without feeling dis- gusted at the contemptible invention of those gods which have been made objects of terrour or love to mankind. To begin with the in- habitants of India and Egypt, of Greece and Rome, what littleness ana foolery in their worship what rascality and infamy in their priests! Are ou^ own any better? No! Cicero said, that two Augurs could not look at each other without laughing ; but he littla thought that a time would come win of mean 'irritrlics,^ assuming the title ot />' r- ermd) would endeavour to prrsin fellow men that they represented the Divinity on earth ! t Den miserable*. happiness : the end of all government the beneiit of the governed, not the exclusive advantage of the governours. He gave himself up without reserve to men like himself, whom his prejudices induced him to contemplate as beings of a superior order, as gods upon earth : these profited by his ignorance, took ad- vantage of his prejudices, corrupted him, rendered him vicious, enslaved him, made him miserable. Thus man, intended by Nature for the full enjoy- ment of freedom, to patiently investi- gate her laws, to search into her secrets, to always cling to his experience, has, from a neglect of her salutary ad- monitions, from an inexcusable ignor- ance of his own peculiar essence, fallen into servitude, and has been wickedly governed. Having mistaken himself, he has remained ignorant of the necessary affinity that subsists between him and the beings of his own species : having mistaken his duty to himself, it follow- ed, 'as a consequence, he has mistaken his duty to others. He made an errone- ous calculation of what his felicity re- quired; he did not perceive, what he owed to himself, the excesses he ought to avoid, the passions he ought to re- sist, the impulses he ought to follow, in order to consolidate his happiness, to promote his comfort, to further his advantage. In short, he Avas ignorant of his true interests ; hence his irregu- larities, his intemperance, his shame- ful voluptuousness, with that long train of vices to which he has abandoned himself, at the expense of his preser- vation, at the risk of his permanent felicity. It is, therefore, ignorance of himself, that has prevented man from enlighten- *ng his morals. The depraved govern- ments to which he had submitted, felt an interest in preventing the practice of his duties, even when he knew them. Man's ignorance has endured so long, he has taken such slow, such irresolute steps to ameliorate his condi- tion, only because he ^as neglected to study Nature, to scrutinize her laws, to search out her resources, to discover her properties. His sluggishness finds its account in permitting himself to be guided by precedent, rather than to follow experience which demands activity ; to be led by routine, rather than by his reason which exacts reflec- tion. From hence may be traced the aversion man betrays for every thing that swerves from those rules to which he has been accustomed : hence his stupid, his scrupulous respect for anti- quity, for the most silly, the most ab- surd institutions of his fathers : hence those fears that seize him, when the most advantageous changes are propos- ed to him, or the most probable attempts are made to better his condition. He dreads to examine, because he has been taught to hold it a profanation of some- thing immediately connected with his welfare; he credulously believes the interested advice, and spurns at those who wish to show him the danger of the road he is travelling. This is the reason why nations linger on in the most scandalous lethargy, groaning under abuses transmitted from century to century, trembling at the very idea of that which alone can re- medy their misfortunes. It is for want of energy, for want of consulting experience, that medicine, natural philosophy, agriculture, paint- ing, in short, all the useful sciences have so long remained under the shackles of authority, have progressed so little : those who profess these sciences, for the most part prefer treading the beaten paths, however inadequate to their end, rather than strike out new ones : they prefer the ravings of their imagination, their gratuitous conjectures, to that laborious experience which alone can extract her secrets from Nature. In short, man, whether from sloth or from terrour, having renounced the evi- dence of his senses, has been guided in all his actions, in all his enterprises, by imagination, by enthusiasm, by habit, by prejudice, and above all, by autho- rity, which knew well how to deceive him. Thus, imaginary systems have supplied the place of experience of reflection of reason. Man, petrified with his fears, inebriated with the mar- vellous, or benumbed with sloth, sur- rendered his experience : guided by his credulity, he was unable to fall back upon it, he became consequently inex- perienced : from thence he gave birth to the most ridiculous opinions, or else adopted Avithout examination, all those chimeras, ail those idle notions offer- OF NATURE. ed to him by men whose interest it was to fool him to the top of his bent. Thus, because man has forgotten Na- ture, has neglected her ways because he has disdained experience because he has thrown by his reason because he has been enraptured with the mar- vellous, with the supernatural because he has unnecessarily trembled, man has continued so long in a state of in- fancy ; and these are the reasons there is so much trouble in conducting him from this state of childhood to that of manhood. He has had nothing but the most jejune hypotheses, of which he has never dared to examine either the principles or the proofs, because he has been accustomed to hold them sacred, to consider them as the most perfect truths, of which it is not permitted to doubt, even for an instant. His ig- norance rendered him credulous : his curiosity made him swallow large draughts of the marvellous : time con- firmed him in his opinions, and he passed his conjectures from race to race for realities ; a tyrannical power main- tained him in his notions, because by those alone could society be enslaved. At length the whole science of man be- came a confused mass of darkness, falsehood and contradictions, with here and there a feeble ray of truth, furnished by that Nature of which he can never entirely divest himself, be- cause, without his knowledge, his ne- cessities are continually bringing him back to her resources. Let us then, raise ourselves above these clouds of prejudice, contemplate the opinions of men, and observe their various systems ; let us learn to distrust a disordered imagination ; let us take experience, that faithful monitor, for our guide ; let us consult Nature, ex- plore her laws, dive into her stores ; let us draw from herself our ideas of the beings she contains ; let us fall back on our senses, which errour, in- terested errour has taught us to suspect; let us consult that reason, which, for the vilest purposes, has been so shame- fully calumniated, so cruelly disgraced ; let us attentively examine the visible world, and let us try if it will not en- able us to form a tolerable judgment of the invisible territory of the intellectual world : perhaps it may be found th:it there has been no sufficient reason for distinguishing them, and that it is not without motives that two empires have been separated, which are equally the inheritance of nature. The universe, that vast assemblage of every thing that exists, presents only matter and motion : the whole offers to our contemplation nothing but an im- mense, an uninterrupted succession of causes and effects; some of these causes are known to us, because they strike immediately on our senses ; others are unknown to us, because they act upon us by effects, frequently very remote from their original cause. An immense variety of matter, com- bined under an infinity of forms, in- cessantly communicates, unceasingly receives a diversity of impulses. The different .properties of this matter, its innumerable combinations, its various methods of action, which are the neces- sary consequence of these combinations, constitute for man, what he calls the essence of beings : it is from these diver- sified essences that spring the orders, the classes, or the systems, which these beings respectively occupy, of which the sum total makes up that which is called NATURE. Nature, therefore, in its most extend- ed signification, is the great whole that results from the assemblage of matter under its various combinations, with that diversity of motions which the uni- verse offers to our view. Nature, in a less extended sense, or considered in each individual, is the whole that results from its essence ; that is to say, the properties, the combination, the impulse, and the peculiar modes of action, by which it is discriminated from other beings. It is thus that MAN is, as a whole, the result of a certain combination of matter, en- dowed with peculiar properties, compe- tent to give, capable of receiving, certain impulses, the arrangement of which is called organization, of which the es- sence is, to feel, to think, to act, to move, after a manner distinguished from other beings with which he can be compared. Man, therefore, ranks in an order, in a system, in. a class by himself, which differs from that of other animals, in whom we do not perceive those properties of which he is possess- ed. The different systems of beings, or if they will, their particular natures, depend on the general system of tha 16 OF MOTION. great whole, or that universal nature, of which they form a part ; to which every thing that exists is necessarily submitted, and attached. Having described the proper defini- tion that should be applied to the word NATURE, I must advise the reader, once for all, that whenever, in the course of this work, the expression occurs, that " Nature produces such or such an effect," there is no intention of per- sonifying that nature, which is purely an abstract being; it merely indicates, that the effect spoken of, necessarily springs from the peculiar properties of those beings which compose the mighty macrocosm. When, therefore, it is said, Nature demands that man should pur- sue his own happiness, it is to prevent circumlocution, to avoid tautology ; it is to be understood that it is the pro- perty of a being that feels, that thinks, that wills, that acts, to labour to its own happiness ; in short, that is called natu- ral which is conformable to the essence of things, or to the laws which Nature prescribes to the beings she contains, in the different orders they occupy, un- der the various circumstances through which they are obliged to pass. Thus health is natural to man in a certain state ; disease is natural to him under other circumstances ; dissolution, or if they will, death, is a natural state for a body, deprived of some of those things, necessary to maintain the existence of the animal, &c. By ESSENCE^ is to be understood, that which constitutes a being such as it is ; the whole of the properties, or qualities, by which it acts as it does. Thus, when it is said, it is the essence of a stone to fall, it is the same as saying, that its descent, is the necessary effect of its gravity, of its density, of the cohesion of its parts, of the elements of which it is composed. In short, the essence of a being, is its particular, its individual nature. CHAPTER II. Of Motion, and its Origin. MOTION is an effect by which a body either changes, or has a tendency to change its position : that is to say, by which it successively corresponds with different parts of space, or changes its relative distance to other bodies. It is motion alone that establishes the rela- tion between our senses and exterior or interior beings : it is only by motion, that these beings are impressed upon us that we know their existence that we judge of their properties that we distinguish the one from the other that we distribute them into classes. The beings, the substances, or the various bodies, of which nature is the assemblage, are themselves effects of certain combinations effects which become causes in their turn. A cause is a being which puts another in motion, or which produces some change in it. The effect is the change produced in one body by the motion or presence of another. Each being, by its essence, by its peculiar nature, has the faculty of pro- ducing, is capable of receiving, has the power of communicating a variety of motion. Thus some beings are proper to strike our organs : these organs are competent to receiving the impression, are adequate to undergoing changes by their presence. Those which cannot act on any of our organs, either imme- diately and by themselves, or mediately, by the intervention of other bodies, exist not for us ; since they can neither move us, nor consequently furnish us with ideas : they can neither be known to us, nor of course be judged of by us. To know an object, is to have felt it; to feel it, it is requisite to have been moved by it. To see, is to have been moved by something acting on the visual organs ; to hear, is to have been struck by some- thing on our auditory nerves. In short, in whatever mode a body may act upon us, whatever impulse we may receive from it, we can have no other knowledge of it than by the ch'ange it produces in us. Nature, as we have alreadv said, is the assemblage of all the beings, and consequently, of all the motion of which we have a knowledge, as well as of many others of which we know nothing, because they have not yet become acces- sible to our senses. From the continual action and re-action of these beings, result a series of causes and effects ; or a chain of motion guided by the con- stant and invariable laws peculiar to each being : which are necessary or inherent to its particular nature, which make it always act or move after a OF MOTION. ir determinate manner. The different principles of this motion, are unknown to us, because we are in many instances, if not in all, ignorant of what constitutes the essence of beings. The elements of bodies escape our senses ; we know them only in the mass : we are neither acquainted with their intimate combi- nation, nor the proportion of these com- binations ; from whence must necessa- rily result their mode of action, their impulse, or their different effects. ""*-* Our senses, bring us generally ac- quainted with two sorts of motion in the beings that surround us. The one is the motion of the mass, by which an entire body, is transferred from one place to another. Of the motion of this genus we are perfectly sensible. Thus, we see a stone fall, a ball roll, an arm move or change its position. The other, is an internal or concealed motion, which always depends on the peculiar energies of a body : that is to say, on its essence, or the combination, the action, and re- action of the minute, of the insensible particles of matter, of which that body is composed. This motion we do not see ; we know it only by the alteration, or change, which, after some time, we discover in these bodies or mixtures. Of this genus is that concealed motion which fermentation produces in the particles that compose flour, which, however scattered, however separated, unite, and form that mass which we call bread. Such, also, is the imper- ceptible motion, by which we see a plant or animal enlarge, strengthen, undergo changes, and acquire new qua- lities, without our eyes being competent to follow its progression, or to perceive the causes which have produced these effects. Such, also, is the internal motion that takes place in man, which is called his intellectual faculties, his thoughts, his passions, nis will. ^Of these we have no other mode of judg- ing than by their action ; that is, by those sensible effects which either ac- company or follow them. Thus, when we see a man run away, we judge him to be interiorly actuated by the passion of fear. Motion, whether visible or concealed, is styled acquired when it is impressed on one body by another ; either by a cause to which we are a stranger, or by an exterior agent which our senses ' No. I. 3 enable us to discover. Thus we call that acquired motion, which the wind gives to the sails of a ship. That motion, which is excited in a body containing within itself the causes of those changes we see it undergo, is called spontaneous. Then it is said, this body acts or moves by its own peculiar energies. Of this kind is the motion of the man who walks, who talks, who thinks. Nevertheless, if we examine the matter a little closer, we shall be convinced, that, strictly speak- ing, there is no such thing as spon- taneous motion in any of the various bodies of Nature ; seeing they are per- petually acting one upon the other ; that all their changes are to be attri- buted to the causes, either visible or concealed, by which they are moved. The will of man, is secretly moved or determined by some exterior cause pro- ducing a change in him : we believe ha. moves of himself, because we neither see the cause that determined him, the mode in which it acted, nor the organ that it put in motion. That is called simple motion, which is excited in a body oy a single cause. Compound motion, that, which is pro- duced by two or more different causes ; whether these causes are equal or un- equal, conspiring differently, acting to- gether or in succession, known or un- known. Let the motion of beings be of what- soever nature it may, it is always the necessary consequence of their essence, or of the properties which compose them, and of those causes of which they experience the action. Each being can only move, and act, after a particu- lar manner ; that is to say, conformably to those laws which result from its peculiar essence, its particular combi- nation, its individual nature : in short, from its specific energies, and those of the bodies from which it receives an impulse. It is this that constitutes the invariable laws of motion : I say inva- riable, because they can never change without producing confusion in the essence of things. It is thus that a heavy body must necessarily fall, if it meets with no obstacle sufficient to arrest its descent ; that a sensible body must naturally seek pleasure, and avoid pain ; that fire must necessarily burn, ! and diffuse light. OF MOTION. Each being, then, has laws of motion that are adapted to itself, and constantly acts, or moves according to these laws 5 at least when no superior cause inter- rupts its action. Thus, fire ceases to 1 urn combustible matter, as soon as sufficient water is thrown into it to arrest its progress. Thus, a sensible being ceases to seek pleasure, as soon as he fears that pain will be the result. The communication of motion, or the medium of action, from one body to another, also follows certain and neces- sary laws : one being can only commu- nicate motion to another by the affinity, by the resemblance, by the conformity, by the analogy, or by the point of con- tact which it has with that other being. Fire can only propagate when it finds matter analogous to itself: it extin- guishes Avhen it encounters bodies which it cannot embrace ; that is to say, that do not bear towards it a cer- tain degree of relation or affinity. Every thing in the universe is in motion; the essence of matter is to act: if we consider its parts attentively, we shall discover that not a particle enjoys absolute repose. Those which appear to us to be without motion, are, in fact, only in relative or apparent rest ; they experience such an imperceptible mo- tion, and expose it so little on their surfaces, that we cannot perceive the changes they undergo.* All that ap- pears to us to be at rest, does not, however, remain one instant in the same state. All beings are continually breeding, increasing, decreasing, or dis- persing, with more or less tardiness or rapidity. The insect called ephemeron, is produced, and perishes in the same day ; consequently, it experiences the great changes of its being very rapidly. Those combinations which form the most solid bodies, and which, to our eyes, appear to enjoy the most perfect repose, are nevertheless decomposed and dissolved in the course of time. The hardest stones, by degrees, give way to the contact of air. A mass of * This truth, which is still denied by many metaphysicians, has been conclusively estab- lished by the celebrated Toland. in a work which appeared in the beginning of the eighteenth century, entitled Letters to Serena. Those who can procure this scarce work will do well to refer to it, and their doubts on the subject, if they have any, will be removed. iron, which time, and the action of the atmosphere, has gnawed into rust, must have-, been in motion from the moment of its formation in the bowels of the earth, until the instant we behold it in this state of dissolution. Natural philosophers, for the most part, seem not to have sufficiently re- flected oa what they call the nisus ; that is to say, the incessant efforts one body is making on another, but which, notwithstanding, appear, to our super- ficial observation, to enjoy the most perfect repose. A stone of five hun- dred weight seems at rest on the earth, nevertheless, it never ceases for an instant to press with force upon- the earth, which resists or repulses it in its turn. Will the assertion be ventured, that the stone and the earth do not act? Do they wish to be undeceived? They have nothing to do, but interpose their hand betwixt the earth and the stone ; it will then be discovered, that, not- withstanding its seeming repose, the stone has power adequate to bruise it. Action cannot exist in bodies without re-action. A body that experiences an impulse, an attraction, or a pressure of any kind, if it resists, clearly demon- strates by such resistance, that it re- acts ; from whence it follows, there is a concealed force, called by philosophers vis inertia, that displays itself against another force ; and this clearly demon- strates, that this inert force is capable of both acting and re-acting. In short, it will be found, on close investigation, that those powers which are called dead, and those which are termed live or moving, are powers of the same species, which only display themselves after a different manner.f t Action! ajqualis et contrana est reactio. V. BlLFINGEB, DE DEO, A3STIMA ET MITN'DO. ccxviii. page 241. Upon which the Com- mentator adds, Reactio dicitur actio patientis in agens, seu corporis in quod agitur actio in illud quod in ipsum agit. Nulla autem datur in corporibus actio sine reactione, dum enim corpus ad motum sollicitatur, resistit motui, atque hac ipsa resistentia reagit in agens. Nisus se exerens adversns nisum agentis, seu vis ilia corporis, quatenus resistit, internum resistentiae principium, vocaturyisinertiae, seu passiva. Ergo corpus reagit vi inertias. Vis igitur inertiae et yis motrix in corporibus una eademque est vis, diyerso tamen mqdo se exerens. Vis autem inertia? consistit in nisi adversus nisum agentis se exerente, &c. IBIDEM. OF MOTION. 19 May we not go farther yet, may we not say, that in those bodies, or masses, of which the whole appears to us to be at rest, there is, notwithstanding, a continual action and reaction, constant efforts, uninterrupted impulse, and con- tinued resistance ? In short, a nisus, by which the component particles of these bodies press one upon another, reciprocally resisting each other, acting, and reacting incessantly 1 that this reciprocity of action, this simultaneous reaction, keeps them united, causes their particles to form a mass, a body, a combination, which, viewed in its whole, has the semblance of complete rest, although no one of its particles ever really ceases to be in motion for a single instant? These bodies appear to be at rest, simply by the equality of the motion of the powers acting in them. Thus bodies that have the appear- ance of enjoying the most perfect re- pose, really receive, whether upon their surface, or in their interior, continual impulsion from those bodies by which they are either surrounded or pene- trated, dilated or contracted, rarefied or condensed ; in short, from those which compose them: whereby their particles are constantly acting, and reacting, or in continual motion, the effects of which are ulteriorly displayed by very remark- able changes. Thus heat rarefies and dilates metals, which clearly demon- strajes, that a bar of iron, from the variation of the atmosphere alone, must be in unceasing motion ; and that not a single particle in it can be said to enjoy rest, even for a single moment. Indeed, in those hard bodies, the par- ticles of which are contiguous, which are closely united, how is it possible to conceive, that air, cold or heat, can act upon one of these particles, even ex- teriorly, without the motion being suc- cessively communicated to those which are most intimate and minute in their union 1 How, without motion, should we be able to conceive the manner in which our sense of smelling is affected by emanations escaping from the most compact bodies, of which all the par- ticles appear to be at perfect rest? How could we, even by the aid of a telescope, see the most distant stars, if there was not a progressive motion of light from these stars to the retina of our eye ? Observation and reflection ought to convince us, that every thing in Nature is in continual motion : that not one of its parts enjoys true repose : that Nature acts in all ; that she would cease to be Nature if she did not act ; and that, without unceasing motion, nothing could be preserved, nothing could be produced, nothing could act. Thus, the idea of Nature necessarily includes that of motion. But, it will* be asked, from whence d id she receive her motion ? Our reply is, from herself, since she is the great whole, out of which, conse- quently, nothing can exist. We say this motion is a manner of existence, that flows, necessarily, out of the es- sence of matter ; that matter moves by its own peculiar energies ; that its motion is to be attributed to the force which is inherent in itself; that the variety of motion, and the phenomena which result, proceed from the diversity of the properties, of the qualities, and of the combinations, which are originally found in the primitive matter, of which Nature is the assemblage. Natural philosophers, for the most part, have regarded as inanimate, or as deprived of the faculty of motion, those bodies which are only moved by the interposition of some agent, or exterior cause ; they have considered themselves justified in concluding, that the matter which constitutes these bodies, is per- fectly inert in its nature. They have not relinquished this errour, although they must have observed, that when- ever a body is left to itself, or disen- gaged from those obstacles which op- pose themselves to its descent, it has a tendency to fall, or to approach the centre of the earth, by a motion uni- formly accelerated ; they have rather chosen to suppose an imaginary exterior cause, of which they themselves had no correct idea, than admit that these bodies held their motion from their own peculiar nature. In like manner, although these philo- sophers saw above them an infinite number of immense globes, moving with great rapidity round a common centre, still they clung fast to their opinions ; and never ceased to suppose chimerical causes for these movements, until the immortal NEWTON demon- strated that it was the effect of the gravitation of these celestial bodies 20 OF MOTION. towards each other.* A very siranle observation would have suffice'! to make the philosophers anterior to Newton feel the insufficiency of the causes they ad- mitted to operate with such powerful effect : they had enough to convince themselves in the clashing oi one body against another which they could con- template, and in the known laws of that motion, which these ahvays com- municate by reason of their greater or less density: from whence they ought to have inferred, that the density of subtile or ethereal matter being infi- nitely less than that of the planets, it could only communicate to them a very feeble motion. If they had viewed Nature uninflu- enced by prejudice, they must have been long since convinced, that matter acts by its own peculiar energy, and needs not any exterior impulse to set it in motion. They would have per- ceived, that whenever mixed bodies were placed in a capacity to act on each other, motion was instantly en- gendered, and that these mixtures acted with a force capable of producing the most surprising effects. If filings of iron, sulphur and water be mixed to- gether, these bodies thus capacitated to act on each other, are heated by degrees, and ultimately produce a vio- lent combustion. If flour be wetted with water, and the mixture closed up, it will be found, after some little lapse of time, by the aid of a microscope, to have produced organized beings that enjoy life, of which the water and the * Natural philosophers, and Newton him- self, have considered the cause of gravitation to be inexplicable; vet it appears that it may be deduced from the motion of matter by which bodies are diversely determined. Gravi- tation is only a mode of moving a tendency towards a centre. But, to speak correctly, all motion is relative gravitation : that which falls relatively to us, ascends with relation to other bodies. Hence it follows, that every luotion in the universe is the effect of gravita- tion; for, in the universe, there is neither up nor dmtm, nor positive centre. It appears that the weight of bodies depend on the con- figuration, both exterior and interior, which gives them that motion called gravitation. A hall of lead being spherical, falls quickly ; but this ball being reduced into very thin plates, will be sustained for -a longer time in the air ; and the action of fire will cause this lead to rise in the atmosphere. Here the same lead, variously modified, will act aftur modes entirely different. flour were believed incapable :f it is thus that inanimate matter can pass into life, or animate matter, which is in itself only an assemblage of motion Reasoning from analogy, the produc- tion of a man, independent of the ordi- nary means, would not be more mar- vellous than that of an insect with flour and water. Fermentation and putre- faction evidently produce living ani- mals. We have here the principle ; and with proper materials, principles can always be brought into action. That generation which is styled equivo- cal, is only so for those who do not reflect, or who do not permit themselves attentively to observe the operations of Nature. The generation of motion, and its development, as well as the energy ol" matter, may he seen more especially in those combinations in which fire, air. and water, find themselves in union. These elements, or rather these mixed bodies, are the most volatile, the most fugitive of beings ; nevertheless, in the hands of Nature they are the principal agents employed to produce the most striking phenomena. To these are w be ascribed the effects of thunder, the eruption of volcanoes, earthquakes, &c. Art offers an agent of astonishing force in gunpowder, the instant it comes in contact with fire. In fact, the most terrible effects result from the com- bination of matter which is generally believed to be dead and inert. These facts incontestably prove, that motion is produced, is augmented, is accelerated in matter, without the con- currence of any exterior agent : it is, therefore, reasonable to conclude, that motion is the necessary consequence of immutable laws, resulting from the essence, from the properties inherent in the different elements, and the various combinations of these elements. Are we not justified, then, in concluding from these examples, that there may be an infinity of other combinations, with which we are unacquainted, com- petent to produce a great variety of motion in matter, without being under the necessity of recurring for the expla- nation to agents who are more difficult t See the Microscopical Observations of Mr. Needham. which fully confirm the above statement of the author. OF MOTION. 21 to comprenend than even the effects which are attributed to them 7 "* If man had paid proper attention to what passed under his view, he would not have sought out of Nature a power distinguished from herself, to set her in action, and without which he believes she cannot move. If, indeed, by Nature is meant a heap of dead matter, destitute of properties, purely passive, we must unquestionably seek out of this Nature the principle of her motion : but, if by Nature, be understood what it really is, a whole, of which the numerous parts are endowed with diverse, and various properties ; which oblige them to act according to these properties ; which are in a perpetual reciprocity of action and reaction ; which press, which gra- vitate towards a common centre, whilst others diverge and fly off towards the periphery, or circumference ; which at- tract, and repel, which unite, and sepa- rate ; which by continual approxima- tion, and constant collision, produce and decompose all the bodies we behold ; then I say, there is no necessity to have recourse to supernatural powers to account for the formation of things, and those phenomena which are the result of motion. Those who admit a cause exterior to matter, are obliged to suppose, that this cause produced all the motion by which matter is agitated in giving it existence. This supposition rests on another, namely, that matter could begin to ex- ist ; a hypothesis that, until this mo- ment, has never been demonstrated by any thing like solid proof. To pro- duce from nothing, or the Creation, is a term that cannot give us the most slender idea of the formation of the universe ; it presents no sense, upon which the mind can fasten itself.* * In fact, the human mind is not adequate to conceive a moment when all was nothing, or when all shall have passed away; even admitting this to be a truth, it is no truth for us, because by the very nature of our organ- ization we cannot admit positions as facts, of which no evidence can be adduced that has relation to our senses : we may, indeed, con- sent to believe it, because others say it ; but will any rational being be satisfied with such an admission? Can any moral good spring from such blind confidence? Is it consistent with sound doctrine, with philosophy, with reason ? Do we, in fact, pay any respect to the understanding; of another when we say to him, 1 will believe this, because in all the at- Motion becomes still more obscure, when creation, or the formation of mat- ter, is attributed to a spiritual being, tnat is to say, to a being which has no analogy, no point of contact, with it ; to a being which has neither extent, nor parts, and cannot, therefore, be sus- ceptible of motion, as we understand the 'term ; this being only the change of one body relatively to another body, in which the body moved, presents suc- cessively different parts to different points of space. Moreover, as all the world are nearly agreed that matter can never be totally annihilated, or cease to exist, how can we understand, that that which cannot cease to be, could ever have had a beginning ? If, therefore, it be asked, whence came matter ? it is a very reasonable reply to say, it has always existed. If it be inquired, whence proceeds the motion that agitates matter ? the same reasoning furnishes the answer ; name- ly, that, as motion is coeval with mat- ter, it must have existed from all eter- nity, seeing that motion is the ne- cessary consequence of its existence, of its essence, of its primitive pro- perties, such as its extent, its gra- vity, Us impenetrability, its figure, &c. By virtue of these essential, con- stituent properties, inherent in all mat- ter, and without which it is impossible to form an idea of it, the various mat- ter of which the universe is composed must, from all eternity, have presseu against each other ; have gravitated to- wards a centre; have clashed; have come in contact ; have been attracted ; have been repelled ; have been com- bined ; have been separated ; in short, must have acted and moved according to the essence and energy peculiar to each genus, and to each of its combin- tempts you have ventured for the purpose of proving what yv..a say, you have entirely fail- ed; and have oeen at last obliged to ac- knowledge, you know nothing about the mat- ter? What moral reliance ought we to have on such people; Hypothesis may m, hypothesis; sy? em may destroy system ; a new set of idea? may overturn the ideas of a former day. ("her Galileos may be con- demned to death other Newtons may arise we may reaso.i ; we may argue; we may dispute; we may quarrel; we may punish; we may destroy ; we may even exterminate those who differ from us in opinion ; but when we have done all this, we shall be obliged to fall back on our original darkness ; to confess, OF MOTION. ations. Existence supposes properties in the thing that exists : whenever it has properties, its mode of action must necessarily flow from those properties which constitute its mode of being. Thus, when a body is ponderous, it must fall ; when it falls, it must come in collision with the bodies it meets in its descent ; when it is dense, when it is solid, it must, by reason of this den- sity, communicate motion to the bodies with which it clashes ; when it has analogy or affinity with these bodies, it must unite with them ; when it has no point of analogy with them, it must be repulsed. From which it may be fairly infer- red, that, in supposing, as we are under the necessity of doing, the existence of matter, we must suppose it to have some kind of properties, from which its motion, or modes of action, must ne- cessarily flow. To form the universe Descartes asked but matter and mo- tion : a diversity of matter sufficed for him; variety oi motion was the conse- quence of its existence, of its essence, of its properties : its different modes of action would be the necessary conse- quence of its different modes of being. Matter without properties, would be a that that which has no relation with our senses, which cannot manifest itself to us by some of the ordinary modes by which other things are manifested, has no existence for us ; is not comprehensible by us ; can never entirely remove our doubts; can never seize on our steadfast belief; seeing it is that of which we cannot form even an idea; in short, that it is that, which as long as we remain what we are, must be hidden from us by a veil which no power, no faculty, no energy we possess, is able to remove. All who are not enslaved by prejudice, agree to the truth of the position : that nothing can be made of nothing'. Many theologians have acknowledged na- ture to be an active whole. Almost all the ancient philosophers were agreed to regard the world as eternal. OCELLUS LUCANUS, speak- ing of the universe, says : " it has always been, and it always will be." VATABLE and GRO- TIUS assure us, that, to render correctly the Hebrew phrase in the first chapter of Gene- sis, we must say : " Wlten God made heaven and earth-, matter was without form:" if this be true, and every Hebraist can judge for him- self, then the word which has been rendered created, means only to fashion, fonn, arrange. We know that the Greek words create and form, have always indicated the same thing. According to ST. JEROME, crtnrt has the same nic:ini:iir as condere, to found, to build. The liible does not any where say in a clear mere nothing : therefore, as soon as matter exists, it must act ; as soon as it is various, it must act variously ; if it cannot commence to exist, it must have existed from all eternity ; if it has always existed, it can never cease to be : if it can never cease to be, it can never cease to act by its own energy. Motion is a manner of being, which matter derives from its peculiar exist- ence. The existence then of matter h a fact; the existence of motion is another fact. Our visual organs point out to us matter Avith different essences, form - ing a variety of combinations, endow- ed with various properties that, dis- criminate them. Indeed, it is an errour to believe that matter is a homogene ous body, of which the parts differ from each other only by their various modifications. Among the individuals of the same species that come under our notice, no two are exactly alike, and it is therefore evident that the dif- ference of situation alone, will neces- sarily carry a diversity more or less sensible, not only in the modifications, but also in the essence, in the proper- ties, in the entire system of beings.* If this principle be properly weighed, manner, that the world was made of nothing. TERTULLIAN, and the father PETAU, both aii- mit that, "this is a truth established more by reasoning, than by authority." ST. JUSTIN seems to nave contemplated matter as eternal, since he commends PLATO for having said that " God in the creation of the world only gave impulse to matter, and fashioned il. : BURNET and PYTHAGORAS were entirely of this opinion, and even the church service m.-iy be adduced in support ; for although it admits by implication a beginning, it expressly denits an ena : " As it was in the beg-innin^, is nmr. and eter shall be, world without end." It is easy to perceive, that that which cannot cease to exist, must have always been. * Those who have observed nature closely, know that two grains of sand are not strictly alike. As soon as the circumstances or the modifications are not the same for the beings of the same species, there cannot be an rx:n ' resemblance between them. SEE CHAP. vi. This truth was well understood by the pro- found and subtle LEIBXITZ. This is the man- ner in which one of his disciples explained himself: Ex principio indiscernibilium pat.-t elementa rerum materialium singula singulis esse dissimilia, adeo que unum ab altero di?- tingui, convenienter omnia extra se invicem existere, in quo differunt a punctis mathema- ticis, cum ilia uti hxc nunquam coincider-; possint. BILFINGER, DE DEO, ANIMA T MUNDO, pae 276 OF MOTION. and experience seems always to pro- duce evidence of its truth, we must be convinced, that the matter, or primi- tive elements Avhich enter the compo- sition of bodies, are not of the same na- ture, and, consequently, can neither have the same properties, nor the same modifications ; and if so, they cannot have the same mode of moving, and acting. Their activity or motion, al- ready different, can be diversified to in- finity, augmented or diminished, acce- lerated or retarded, according to the combinations, the proportions, the pres- sure, the density, the volume of the matter that enters their composition. The element of fire, is visibly more active and more inconstant than that of earth. This is more solid and pon- derous than fire, air, or water. Ac- cording to the quality of the elements which enter the composition of bodies, these must act diversely, and their mo- tion must in some measure partake the motion peculiar to each of their constitu- ent parts. Elementary fire appears to be in nature the principle of activity ; it may be compared to a fruitful leaven, that puts the mass into fermentation and gives it life. Earth appears to be the principle of solidity in bodies, from its impenetrability, and by the firm co- herence of its parts. Water is a me- dium, to facilitate the combination of bodies, into which it enters itself as a constituent part. Air is a fluid, whose business it seems to be, to furnish the other elements with the space requisite to exercise their motion, and which is, moreover, found proper to combine with them. These elements, which our senses never discover in a pure state ; which are continually and reci- procally set in motion by each other; vvhieh are always acting and re-acting; combining and separating ; attracting and repelling ; are sufficient to explain to us the formation of all the beings we behold. Their motion is uninterrupt- edly, and reciprocally, produced from each other ; they are alternately causes and effects. Thus, they form a vast circle of generation and destruction, of combination and decomposition, which could never have had a beginning, and .which can never have an end. In short, nature is but an immense chain of causes and effects, which unceasing- ly 11 nv from each other. The motion of particular beings depends on the general motion, which is itself main tained by individual motion. This is strengthened or weakened accelera- ted or retarded simplified or compli- cated procreated or destroyed, by a variety of combinations and circum- stances, which every moment change the directions, the tendency, the modes of existing and of acting, of the differ- ent beings that receive its impulse.* If we desire to go beyond this, to find the principle of action in matter and to trace the origin of things, it is for ever to fall back upon difficulties ; it is absolutely to abridge the evidence of our senses, by which alone we can judge of and understand the causes acting upon them, or the impulse by which they are set in action. Let us, therefore, content ourselves with saying that which is supported by our experience, and by all the evi- dence we are capable of understanding ; against the truth of which, not a shadow of proof such as our reason can admit, has ever been adduced ; which has been maintained by philosophers in every age ; which theologians themselves have not denied, but which many of ; them have upheld ; namely, that matter ' always existed ; that it moves by virtue of its essence ; that all the phenomena I of Nature is ascribable to the diversi- fied motion of the variety of matter she contains; and which, like the phenij; is continually regenerating out of her 1 own ashes. ,f * If it were true that every thing has a tendency to form one unique or single mass, and in that unique mass the instant should arrive when all was in nisi*?, all would ett;r 1 nally remain in this state to all eternity men? ' would be but one effort, and this would ot eternal and universal death. Natural philo- sophers understand by nisus the effo; t of one body against another body, without local translation. This granted, there could be no ' cause of dissolution, for, according to chy- mists, bodies act only when dissolved. Cor- j pora non agunt nisi sint sftluta. t Omnium qua? in sempiterno isto mundo semper fuerunt futuraque sunt, aiunt principium fuisse nullurn, sed orbem esse quemdam ir. nc- rantium nascentiumque, in quo uniuscujusque geniti initium simul et finis esse videtur. V. CENSORIN-. Dt Die Natali. The poet Maniliua expresses himself in the same manner in these beautiful lines : i Omnia mutantur mortal! legi creata, Nee se cognoscunt terrae vertentibus annis, '. Exutas variam faciem per saecula gentes OF MATTER. CHAPTER III. Of Matter : Of its various Combinations*; Of its dirersified Motion ; or, of Uie Course of Nature. WE know nothing of the elements of bodies, but we know some of their properties or qualities ; and we distin- guish their various matter by the effect or change produced on our senses ; that is to say, by the variety of motion their presence excites in us. In consequence, we discover in them extent, mobility, divisibility, solidity, gravity, and inert force. From these general and primi- tive properties, flow a number of others, such as density, figure, colour, ponder- osity, &c. Thus, relatively to us, matter is all that affects our senses, in any manner whatever; the various proper- ties we attribute to matter, are founded on the different impressions we receive, on the changes they produce in us. A satisfactory definition of matter has not yet been given. Man, deceived and led astray by his prejudices, formed but vague, superficial, and imperfect notion; concerning it. He looked upon it as a unique being, gross and passive, incapable of either moving by itself, of forming combinations, or of producing any thing by its own energies ; whilst he ought to have contemplated it as a genus of beings, of which the indi- viduals, although they might possess some common properties, such as ex- tent, divisibility, figure, &c., should not, however, be all ranked in the same class, nor comprised under the same general denomination. An example will serve more fully to explain what we have just asserted, throw its correctness into light, and facilitate the application. The proper- ties common to all matter, are, extent, divisibility, impenetrability, figure, mo- bility, or the property of being moved in mass. Fire, beside these general At manet incolumis mundus suaque omnia servat, Quae nee longa dies auget, mi >uitque senectus, Nee motus puncto currit, cu r susque fatigat : Idem semper erit, quoniam semper fuit idem. Manilii Astronom. Lib. I. This also was the opinion of PYTHAGORAS, such as it is .set forth by Ovid, in the fifteenth Book of his Metamorphoses, verse 165, and the following : Omnia mutantur, nihil intent; errat et illinc. Hue venit, nine illuc, &c. properties common to all matter, enjoys also the peculiar property of being put into activity by a motion producing on our organs of feeling the sensation ot heat, and by another, which communi- cates to our visual organs the sensation of light. Iron, in common with matter in general, has extent and figure ; is divisible, and moveable in mass : if fire be combined with it in a certain propor- tion, the iron acquires two new proper- ties, namely, those of exciting in us similar sensations of heat and light, which the iron had not before its com- bination with the igneous matter. These distinguishing properties are insepara- ble from matter, and the phenomena that result, may, in the strictest sense of the word, be said to result necessarily. If we only contemplate the paths of nature ; if we trace the beings in this nature under the different states through which, by reason of their properties, they are compelled to pass, we shall discover that it is to motion, and motion alone, that is to be ascribed all the changes, all the combinations, all the forms, in short, all the various modifications of matter. That it is by motion every thing that exists is produced, expe- riences change, expands, and is de- stroyed. It is motion that alters the aspect of beings, that adds to, or takes away from their properties ; which obliges each of them, by a consequence of its nature, after having occupied a certain rank or order, to quit it to occupy another, and to contribute to the gene- ration, maintenance, and decomposition of other beings, totally different in their bulk, rank, and essence. In what experimental philosophers have styled the three orders of nature, that is to say, the mineral, the vegetable, and the animal worlds, they have estab- lished, by the aid of motion, a transmi- gration, an exchange, a continual circu- lation in the particles of matter. Nature has occasion in one place for those par- ticles which, for a time, she has placed in another. These particles, after hav- ing, by particular combinations, con- stituted beings endued with peculiar essences, with specific properties, with determinate modes of action, dissolve and separate with more or less facility; and combining in a new manner, they form new beings. The attentive, ob- server sees this law execute itself in a OF MATTER. 25 manner more or less prominent through all the beings by which he is surround- ed. He sees nature full of erratic germs, some of which expand them- selves, whilst others wait until motion has placed them in their proper situa- tion, in suitable wombs or matrices, in the necessary circumstances to unfold, to increase, to render them more per- ceptible by the addition of other sub- stances of "matter analogous to their primitive being. In all this we see nothing but the effect of motion, neces- sarily guided, modified, accelerated or slackened, strengthened or Aveakened, by reason of the various properties that beings successively acquire and lose ; which, every moment, infallibly pro- duces alterations in bodies, more or less marked. Indeed these bodies cannot be, strictly sneaking, the same in any two successive moments of their exist- ence ; they must, every instant, either acquire or lose : in short, they are obliged to undergo continual variations in their essences, in their properties, in their energies, in their masses, in their qualities, in their mode of existence. Animals, after they have been ex- panded in, and brought out of the wombs that are suitable to the ele- ments of their machine, enlarge, strengthen, acquire new properties, new energies, new faculties ; either by de- riving nourishment from plants analo- gous to their being, or by devouring other animals whose substance is suit- able to their preservation ; that is to say, to repair the continual deperdition, or loss, of some portion of their own substance that is disengaging itself every instant. These same animals are nourished, preserved, strengthened, and enlarged by the aid of air, water, earth, and fire. Deprived of air, or of the fluid that surrounds them, that presses on them, that penetrates them, that gives them their elasticity, they presently cease to live. Water com- bined with this air, enters into their whole mechanism, of which it facili- tates the motion. Earth serves them for a basis, by giving solidity to their texture : it is conveyed by air and water, which carry it to those parts of the body with which it can combine. Fire itself, disguised and enveloped under an infinity of forms, continually received into the animal, procures him No. I. 4 heat, contmue3,him in life, renders him capable of exercising his functions. The aliments, charged with these va- rious principles, entering into the sto- mach, re-establish the nervous system, and restore, by their activity, and the elements which compose them, the machine which begins to languish, to be depressed, by the loss it has sustain- ed. Forthwith the animal experiences a change in his whole system ; he has more energy, more activity ; he feels more courage ; displays more gaiety ; he acts, he moves, he thinks, after a different manner; all his faculties are exercised with more ease.* From this it is clear, that what are called the ele- ments, or primitive parts of matter, when variously combined, are, by the agency of motion, continually united to, and assimilated with the substance of animals: that they visibly modify their being, have an evident influence over their actions, that is to say, upon the motion th.ev undergo, whether vi- sible or concealed. The same elements, which under certain circumstances serve to nourish, to strengthen, to maintain the animal, become, under others, the principles of his weakness, the instruments of his dissolution, of his death : they work his destruction, whenever they are not in that just proportion, which renders them proper to maintain his existence : thus when water becomes too abundant in the body of the animal, it enervates him, it relaxes the fibres, and impedes the necessary action of the other ele- ments : thus, fire admitted in excess, excites in him disorderly motion, des- tructive of his machine : thus, air, charged with principles not analogous to his mechanism, brings upon him dangerous diseases and contagion. In fine, the aliments modified after certain * We may here remark, that all spiritiiOHS substances (that is to say, those containing a great proportion of inflammable and igneous matter, such as wine, brandy, liouor.. &e.) are those that accelerate most the organic motion of animals, by communicating to them heat. Thus, wine generates courage, and even wit. In spring and summer myriads of insects are hatched, and a luxuriant v ir< '*i- tion springs into life, because the matter of fire is then more abundant than in winter. This ismemis matter is evidently the cause of . fermentation, of generation, and of life the Jupiter of the ancients. 26 OF MATTER. modes, instead of nourishing destroy the animal, and cond ce to his ruin : the animal is preserved no longer than these substances are analogous to his system. They ruin him when they want that just equilibrium that renders them suitable to maintain his exist- ence. Plants, that serve to nourish and re- store animals, are themselves nourish- ed by earth ; they expand on its bosom, enlarge and strengthen at its expense, continually receiving into their texture, by their roots and their pores, water, air, and igneous matter : water visibly reanimates them Avhenever their vege- tation, or genus of life, languishes ; it convey s to them those analogous prin- ciples by which they are enabled to reach perfection ; air is requisite to their expansion, and furnishes them with water, earth, and igneous matter with which it is charged. By these means thev receive more or less of the inflammable matter ; and the different proportions of these principles, their numerous combinations, from whence result an infinity of properties, a variety of forms^ constitute the various families and classes into which botanists have distributed plants : it is thus, we see the cedar, and the hyssop, develop their growth ; the one, rises to the clouds ; th? other, creerls humbly on the earth. Thus, by degrees, from an acorn sprhijs the majestic oak, ac- cumulating with time its numerous branches, aud overshadowing us with ; ..s 'oliage. Thus, a grain of corn, after drawn its own nourishment from the juices of the earth, serves, in its curn, for the nourishment of man, jito whose system it conveys the ele- ments or principles by which it has been itself expanded combined and modified in such a manner, as to render this vegetable proper to assimilate and unite with the human frame : that is to say, with the fluids and solids of which it is composed. . The same elements, the same prin- ciples. are found in the formation of minerals, and also in their decomposi- tion, whether natural or artificial. We find that earth diversely modified, wrought and combined, serves to in- crease their bulk, and give them more <>r less density and gravity. Air and water contribute to make their parti- cles cohere : the igneous matter, or in- flammable principle, tinges them with colour, and sometimes, plainly indi- cates its presence by the brilliant scin- tillation, which motion elicits from them. These stones and metals, these bodies so compact and solid, are dis- united, are destroyed, by the agency of air, water, and fire which the most ordinary analysis is sufficient to prove, as well as a multitude of experience to which our eyes are the daily evidence. Animals, plants, and minerals, after a lapse of time, give back to nature that is to say, to the general mass of things, to the universal magazine the elements or principles which they have borrowed. The earth retakes that portion of the body of which it formed the basis and the solidity ; the air charges itself with those parts that are analogous to it, and with those par- ticles which are light and subtile ; water carries off that which is suitable to liquescency ; fire bursting its chains, disengages itself, and rushes into new combinations with other bodies. The elementary particles of the ani- mal being thus dissolved, disunited, and dispersed, assume new activity, and form new combinations: thus, they serve to nourish, to preserve, or destroy new beings among others, plants, which, arrived at their maturity, nour- ish and preserve new animals ; these, in their turn, yielding to the same fate as the first. Such is the invariable course of Na- ture : such is the eternal circle of mu- tation, which all that exists is obliged to describe. It is thus that motion generates, preserves for a time, and successively destroys one part of the universe by the other ; whilst the sum of existence remains eternally the same. Nature, by its combinations, produces suns, which place them- selves in the centre of so many sys- tems : she forms planets, which, by their peculiar essence, gravitate and describe their revolutions round these suns: by degrees the motion is chang- ed altogether, and becomes eccentric : perhaps the day may arrive when these wondrous masses will disperse, of which man, in the short space of his existence, can only have a faint and transient glimpse. It is clear, then, 'that the continual OF THE LAWS OF MOTION. 27 notion inherent in matter, changes and destroys all beings ; every instant depriving them of some of their pro- perties to substitute others : it is mo- tion which, in thus changing their actual essence, changes also their order, their, direction, their tendency, and the laws which regulate their mode of act- ing and being : from the stone formed in the bowels of the earth by the inti- mate combination and close coherence of similar and analogous particles, to the sun, that vast reservoir of igneous particles, which sheds torrents of light over the firmament ; from the benumb- ed oyster, to the thoughtful and active man, we see an uninterrupted progres- sion, a perpetual chain of motion and combination, from which is produced beings, that only differ from each other by the variety of their elementary mat- ter : and by the aumerous combina- tions of these elements spring modes of action and existence, diveKified to infinity. In generation, in nutrition, in preservation, we see nothing more than matter variously combined, of which each has its peculiar motion, re- gulated by fixed and determinate laws, which oblige them to submit to neces- sary changes. We shall find in the formation, in the growth, in the in- stantaneous life of animals, vegetables and minerals, nothing but matter, which, combining, accumulating, ag- gregating, and expanding by degrees, forms beings, who are either feeling, living, vegetating, or else destitute of these faculties ; and having existec some time under one particular form they are obliged to contribute by their ruin to the production of other forms.* CHAPTER IV. Of the Laws of Motion common to all th 'Beings of Nature Of Attraction and Re jnilsion Of inert Force Of Necessity. MAN is never surprised at those effect of which he thinks he knows the cause he believes he does know the cause a * Destructio unius, generatio altering. Thus to speak strictly, nothing in nature is eithe born, or dies, according TO the common ac captation of those terms. This truth wa felt by many of the ancient philosophers PLATO tells us, that according to an old tra dition, " the living were born of the dead, th oon as he sees them act in a uniform nd determinate manner, or when the lotion excited is simple : the descent f a stone, that falls by its own peculiar veight, is an object of meditation only o the philosopher, to whom the mode y which the most immediate causes *ct, and the most simple motion, are 10 less impenetrable mysteries than the most complex motion, and the manner iy which the most complicated causes give impulse. The uninformed are eldom tempted either to examine the iffects which are familiar to them, or o recur to first principles. They think hey see nothing in the descent of a tone which ought to elicit their sur- mise, or become the object of their esearch : it requires a Newton to feel hat the descent of heavy bodies is a jhenomenon worthy his whole, his most serious attention : it requires the saga- city of a profound experimental philo- sopher, to discover the laws by which leavy bodies fall, by which they com- municate to others their peculiar motion. In short, the mind that is most practised in philosophical observation, has fre- quently the chagrin to find, that the most simple and most common effects escape all his researches, and remain inexplicable to him. When any extraordinary, any un- usual effect is produced, to which our eyes have not been, accustomed ; or when we are ignorant of the energies of the cause, the action of which so forcibly strikes our senses, we are tempted to meditate upon it, and take it into our consideration. The Euro- pean, accustomed to the use. of gun- powder, passes it by, without thinking much of its extraordinaiy energies ; the workman, who labours to manufacture it, finds nothing marvellous in its pro- perties, because he daily handles the same as the dead did come of the living ; and that this is the constant routine of nature." He adds from himself, "Who knows if to live, be not to die; and if to die, be not to live?" This was the doctrine of PYTHAGORAS, a man of great talent and no less note. EMPKDOCLES says, "There is neither birth nor death for any mortal, but only a combination and a separa- tion of that which was combined, and this is what amongst men they call birth and death." Again he remarks, " Those are in- fants, or short-sighted persons with very con- tracted understandings, who imagine any thing is born which did not exist before, or that any thing can die or perish totally." 28 OF THE LAWS OF MOTION. matter that enters its composition. The American, who hart never beheld its operation, looked upon it as a divine power, and its energies as supernatural. Tae uninformed, who are ignorant of the true cause of thunder, contemplate it as the instrument of celestial ven- geance. The experimental philosopher considers it as the effect of the electric matter, which, nevertheless, is itself a cause which he is very far fr^m per- fectly understanding.* Be this as it may, whenever we see a cause act, we look upon its effect as natural : when this cause becomes fa- miliar to the sight, when we are accus- tomed to it, we think we understand it, and its effects surprise us no longer. Whenever any unusual effect is per- ceived without our discovering the cause, the mind sets to work, becomes uneasy ; this uneasiness increases in proportion to its extent : as soon as it i i believed to threaten our preservation, we become completely agitated : we seek after the cause with an earnestness proportioned to our alarm ; our per- plexity augments in a ratio equivalent to the persuasion we are under hoAV essentially requisite it is we should become acquainted with the cause that has affected us in so lively a manner. As it frequently happens that our senses can teach us nothing respecting this cause which so deeply interests us, which we seek with so much ardour ; \ve have recourse to our imagination ; this, disturbed with alarm, enervated by fear, becomes a suspicious, a falla- cious guide : we create chimeras, ficti- tious causes, to whom we give the credit, to whom we ascribe the honour of those phenomena by which we have been so much alarmed. It is to this disposition of the human mind that must be attributed, as will be seen in the sequel, the religious errours of man, who, despairing of the capability to trace the natural causes of those * It required the keen, the penetrating mind of a FRANKLIN, to throw light on the nature of this subtile fluid ; to develop the means by which its effects might be rendered harmless ; to turn to useful purposes a phenomenon that made the ignorant tremble, that filled their minds with terrour, their hearts with dismay, as indicating the anger of the gods : impressed with this idea, they prostrated themselves, they sacrificed to Jupiter or Jehovah, to depre- cate their wrath. perplexing phenomena to which he was the witnesSj and sometimes the victim, created in his brain, heated Avith terrour, imaginary causes, which have become to him a source of the I most extravagant folly. In nature, however, there can be only natural causes and effects; all the motion excited in this nature follows constant and necessary laws: the natu- ral operations to the knowledge of which we are competent, of which we are in a capacity to judge, are of themselves sufficient to enable us to discover those which elude our sight ; we can at least judge of them by analogy. If we study nature with attention, the modes of action which she displays to our senses will teach us not to be disconcerted by those which she refuses to discover. Those causes which are the most re- mote from their effects, unquestionably act by intermediate causes ; by the aid of thess, we can frequently trace out the first. If in the chain of these causes we sometimes meet with obstacles that oppose themselves to our research, we ought to endeavour by patience and diligence to overcome them ; when it so happens we cannot surmount the difficulties that occur, we still are never justified in concluding the chain to be broken, or that the cause which acts is supernatural. Let us, then, be con- tent with an honest avowal, that Nature contains resources of which we are ignorant ; but never let us substitute phantoms, fictions, or imaginary causes, senseless terms, for those causes which escape our research; because, by such means, we only confirm ourselves in ignorance, impede our inquiries, and obstinately remain in errour. In spite of our ignorance with respect to the meanderings of Nature, of the essence of beings, of their properties, their elements, their combinations, their proportions, we yet know the simple and general laws according to which bodies move, and we see clearly, that some of these laws, common to all beings, never contradict themselves : although, on some occasions, they ap- pear to vary, we are frequently compe- tent to discover that the cause becoming complex, from combination witli other causes, either impedes, or prevents its mode of action, being such as in its I primitive state we had a right to expect. OF THE LAWS OF MOTION. 29 We know that active, igneous matter, applied to gunpowder, must necessarily tsause it to explode : whenever this effect iocs not follow the combination of the igneous matter with the gunpowder, whenever our senses do not give us evidence of the fact, we are justified in concluding, either that the powder is damp, or that it is united with some other substance that^counteracts its ex- plosion. We know that all the actions of man have a tendency to render him happy : whenever, therefore, we see him labouring to injure or destroy himself, it is just to infer that he is moved by some cause opposed to his natural ten- dency ; that he is deceived by some Erejudice ; that, for want of experience, e is blind to consequences : that he does not see whither his actions will lead him. If the motion excited in beings was always simple ; if their actions did not blend and combine with each other, it would be easy to know the effect a cause would produce. I know that a stone, when descending, ought to de- scribe a perpendicular : I also know, that if it encounters any other body which changes its course, it is obliged to take an oblique direction ; but if its fall be interrupted by several contrary powers which act upon it alternately, I am no longer competent to determine what line it will describe. It may be a parabola, an ellipsis, spiral, circular, -ence is a mode of acting, a method )f existence, natural to some particular aeings that, if this intelligence should )e attributed to nature, it would then >e nothing more than the faculty of :onserving herself in active existence necessary means. In refusing to b lature the intelligence he himself en- joys in rejecting the intelligent cause which is supposed to be the contriver of this nature, or the principle of that order he discovers in her course, noth- ng is given to chance, nothing to a )liud cause ; but every thing he be- holds is attributed to real, to known causes, or to such as are easy of com- prehension. All that exists is ac- knowledged to be a consequence of the inherent properties of eternal matter, which, by contact, by blending, by combination, by change of form, pro- duces order and confusion, and all those varieties which assail his sight it is himself who is blind, when he imagines blind causes man only manifested his ignorance of the powers and laws of nature, when he attributed any of its effects to chance. He did not show a more enlightened mind when he as- cribed them to an intelligence, the idea of which is always borrowed from him- self, but which is never in conformity with the effects which he attributes to its intervention he only imagined words to supply the place of things, and believed he understood them by thus obscuring ideas which he never dared either define or analyze. CHAPTER VI. Of Man Of his Distinction into Moral and Physical Of his Origin. LET us noAv apply the general laws we have scrutinized, to those beings of nature who interest us the most. Let us see in Avhat man differs from the other beings by which he is surround- ed. Let us examine if he has not cer- tain points in conformity with them that oblige him, notwithstanding the different properties they respectively possess, to act in certain respects ac- to the universal laws to which 40 OF MAN. .' every thing is submitted. Finally, let us inquire if the ideas he has formed of himself in meditating on his own pe- culiar mode of existence, be chimeri- cal, or founded in reason. Man occupies a place amidst that crowd, that multitude of beings, of 'which nature is the assemblage. His essence, that is to say, the peculiar manner of existence by which he is distinguished from other beings, ren- ders him susceptible of various modes of action, of a variety of motion, some of which are simple and visible, others concealed and complicated. His life itself is nothing more than a long series, a succession of necessary and con- nected motion, which operates perpet- ual and continual changes in his ma- chine ; which has for its principle either causes contained within himself, such as blood, nerves, fibres, flesh, bones, in short, the matter, as well solid as fluid, of which his body is composed or those exterior causes, which, by acting upon him, modify him diversely; such as the air with which he is encompass- ed, the aliments by which he is nourish- ed, and all those objects from which he receives any impulse whatever by the impression they make on his senses. Man, like all other beings in nature, tends to his own preservation he ex- periences inert force he gravitates upon himself he is attracted by ob- jects that are analogous, and repelled by those that are contrary to him he seeks after some he flies or endeavours to remove himself from others. It is this variety of action, this diversity of modification of which the human being is susceptible, that has been designated under such different names, by such varied nomenclature. It will be ne- cessary, presently, to examine these closely and in detail. However marvellous, however hid- den, however complicated, may be the modes of action which the human frame undergoes, whether interiorly or exteriorly ; whatever may be, or ap- pear to be the impulse he either re- ceives or communicates, examined closely, it will be found that- all his motion, all his operations, all his Changes, all his various states, all his revolutions, are constantly regulated by the same laws, which nature has pre- scribed to all the beings she brings forth which she develops which she enriches with faculties of which she increases the bulk which she con- serves for a season Avhich she ends by decomposing or destroying thus obliging them to change their form. / Man, in his origin, is an impercepti- ble point, a speck, of which the parts are without form; of which the mobili- ty, the life, escapes his senses ; in short, in which he does not perceive any sign of those qualities called sen- timent, feeling, fhought, intelligence, force, reason, &,c. Placed in the womb suitable to his expansion, this point unfolds, extends, increases by the continual addition of matter he at- tracts that is analogous to his being, which consequently assimilates itself with him. Having quitted this womb, so appropriate to conserve his exist- ence, to unfold his qualities, to strength- en his habit ; so competent to give, for a season, consistence to the weak rudi ments of his frame ; he becomes adult : hif body has then acquired a consider- able extension of bulk, his motion is marked, his action is visible, he is sen- sible in all his parts ; he is a living, an active mass ; that is to say, he feels, thinks, and fulfils the functions pecu- liar to beings of his species. But how has he become sensible? Because he has been by degrees nourished, enlarg- ed, repaired by the continual attraction that takes place within himself of that kind of matter which is pronounced inert, insensible, inanimate ; although continually combining itself with his machine, of which it forms an active whole, that is living, that feels, judges, reasons, wills, deliberates, chooses, elects ; with a capability of labouring, more or less efficaciously, to his own individual preservation ; that is to say, to the maintenance of the harmony of his natural existence. All the motion and changes that man experiences in the course of his life, whether it be from exterior objects, or from those substances contained with- in himself, are either favourable or prejudicial to his existence; either maintain its^rder, or throw it into con- fusion ; are (her in conformity with, or repugnant to the essential- tendency of his peculiar mode of being. He is compelled by nature to approve of some, to disapprove of others ; some of neces- OF MAN. sity render him happy, others contri- bute to his misery ; some become the objects of his most ardent desire, others of his determined aversion : some elicit his confidence, other? make him trem- ble with fear. -J In all the phenomena man presents, from the moment he quits the womb of his mother, to that wherein he be- comes the inhabitant of the silent tomb, he perceives nothing but a succession of necessary causes and effects, which are strictly conformable to those laws common to all the beings in nature. All his modes of action all his sensa- tions all his ideas all his passions every act of his will every impulse he either gives or receives, are the neces- sary consequences of his own peculiar properties, and those which he findsin the various beings by whom he is moved. Every thing he does every thing that passes within himself, are the effects of inert force of self-gravi- tation of the attractive or repulsive powers contained in his machine of the tendency he has, in common with other beings, to his own individual preservation ; in short, of that energy which is the common property of every being he beholds. Nature, in man, does nothing more than show, in a de- cided manner, what belongs to the ps- culiar nature by which he is distin- guished from the beings of a different system or order. The source of those errours into which man has fallen when he has contemplated himself, has its rise, as will presently be shown, in the opinion he has entertained, that he moved by himself that he always acts by his own natural energy that in his actions, in the will that gave him impulse, he was independent of the general laws of nature, and of those objects which, frequently without his knowledge, and always in spite of him, are, in obedience to these laws, continually acting upon him. If he had examined himself at- tentively, he must have acknowledged, that none of the motion he underweni was spontaneous he must have dis- covered, that even his birth depended on causes wholly out of ^ie reach of his own powers that it was without his own consent he entered into the system in which he occupies a place that, from the moment in which he is No. II. 6 jorn, until that in which he dies, he is continually impelled by causes which, m spite of himself, influence his frame, modify his existence, dispose of his conduct. Would not the slightest re- flection have sufficed to prove to him, that the fluids and the solids of which bis body is composed, as well as that concealed mechanism, which he be- lieves to be independent of exterior causes, are, in fact, perpetually under the influence of these causes ; that without them he would find himself in a total incapacity to act? Would he not have seen, that his temperament, his constitution, did in nowise depend on himself that his passions are the necessary consequence of this tempera- ment that his will is influenced his actions determined by these passions; and consequently by opinions which he has not given to himself? His blood more or less heated or abundant, hU nerves more or less braced, his fibres more or less relaxed, give him disposi- tions either transitory or durable, which are at every moment decisive of his ideas, of his desires, of his fears, of his motion, whether visible or concealed. And the state in which he finds him- self, does it not necessarily depend on the air which surrounds him diversely modified ; on the various properties of the aliments which nourish him ; on the secret combinations that form them- selves in his machine, which either pre- serve its order, oY throw it into confu- sion ? In short, had man fairly studied himself, every thing must have con- vinced him, that in every moment of his duration, he was nothing more than a passive instrument in the hands of necessity. Thus it must appear, that where all the causes are linked one to the other, where the whole forms but one im- mense chain, there cannot be any inde- pendent, any isolated energy ; any de- tached power. It follows, then, that nature, always in action, marks out to man each point of the line he is bound to describe. It is nature that elaborates, that combines the elements of which he must be composed. It is nature that gives him his being, his tendency, his peculiar mode of action. It is nature that develops him, expands him, strengthens him, and preserve* him fur a season during which he is obliged to 42 OF MAN fulfil the ta-k imposed on him. It is nature, that in his journey through life, strews on the road those objects, those events, those adventures, that modify - him in a variety of ways, and give him impulses which are sometimes agree- able and beneficial, at others prejudicial and disagreeable. It is nature, that in giving him feeling, has endowed him witn capacity to choose the means, and to take those methods that are most conducive to his conservation. It is nature, who, when he has finished his career, conducts him to his destruction, and thus obliges him to undergo the constant, the universal law, from the operation of which nothing is exempted. It is thus, also, motion brings man forth out of the womb, sustains him for a season, and at length destroys him, or obliges him to return into the bosom of nature, who speedily reproduces him, scattered under an infinity of forms, in which each of his particles will, in the same manner, run over again the differ- ent stages, as necessarily as the whole had before run over those of his pre- ceding existence. The beings of the human species, as well as all other beings, are susceptible of two sorts of motion : the one, that of the mass, by which an entire body, or some of its parts, are visibly transferred from one place to another; the other, internal and concealed, of some 01 which man is sensible, while some takes place without hS knowledge, and is not even to be guessed at but by the effect it outwardly produces. In a machine so extremely complex as man, formed by the combination of such a multiplicity of matter, so diversified in its properties, so different in its propor- tions, so varied in its modes of action, the motion necessarily becomes of the most complicated kind ; its dullness, as well as its rapidity, frequently escapes the observation of those themselves in whom it takes place. Let us not, then, be surprised, if when man would account to himself for his existence, for his manner of acting, finding so many obstacles to encounter, he lamented such strange hypotheses to explain the concealed spring of his machine if when this motion appeared to him to be different from that of other bodies, he conceived an idea that he moved and acted in a manner altogether distinct from the other neings in nature. He clearly perceived that his body, as well as different parts of it, did act ; but, frequently, he was unable to dis- cover what brought them into action : he then conjectured he contained within himself a moving principle distinguish- ed from his machine, which secretly gave an impulse to the springs Avhich set this machine in motion ; that moA r ed him by its own natural energy ; and that consequently he acted according to laws totally distinct from those which regulated the motion of other beings. He was conscious of certain internal motion which he could not help feeling ; but how could he conceive that this invisible motion was so frequently com- petent to produce such striking effects ? How could he comprehend that a fugitive idea, an imperceptible act of thought, could frequently bring his whole being into trouble and confu- sion 1 He fell into the belief, that he perceived within himself a substance distinguished from that self, endowed with a secret force, in which he sup- posed existed qualities distinctly differ- ing from those of either the risible causes that acted on his organs, or those organs themselves. He did not sufficiently understand, that the primi- tive caust which makes a stone fall, or his arm move, are perhaps as difficult of comprehension, as arduous to be explained, as those internal impulses of which his thought or his will are the effects. Thus, for want of medi- tating nature of considering her under her true point of view of remarking the conformity and noticing the simul- taneity of the motion of this fancied motive-power with that of his body and of his material organs he con- jectured he was not only a distinct being, but that he was set apart, with different energies, from all the other beings in nature ; that he was of a more simple essence, having nothing in com- mon with any thing that he beheld.* * " We must," says an anonymous writer, "define life, before we can reason upon die soul : but this is what I esteem impossible, because there are things in nature so simple that imagination cannot divide them, nor re- duce them to any thing more simple than themselves: such is life, irhitcnr., and light, which we have not been able to define but by their effects." Set Jtf&cdZoneou* Disserta- tions, printed at Amsterdam, 1740, page 232. OF MAX. 43 It is from thence his notions of spi- rituality, immateriality, immortality. have successively sprung; in short, all those vague unmeaning words he has invented by degrees, in order to subtilize and designate the attributes of the un- known poAver which he believes he contains Avithin himself, and which he conjectures to be the concealed prin- ciple of all his visible actions.* To croAvn the bold conjectures he ventured to make on this internal motive-power, lie .supposed that different from all other beings, even from the body that served to envelop it, it was not bound to un- dergo dissolution ; that such Avas its perfect simplicity, that it could not be decomposed, nor even change its form ; in short, that it Avas by its essence exempted from those revolutions to Avhich he saw the body subjected, as well as all the compound beings with Avhich nature is filled. Thus man became double ; he looked upon himself as a Avhole, composed by the inconceivable assemblage of IAVO distinct natures, Avhich had no-point of analogy betAveen themselves: he dis- tinguished tAvo substances in himself; one evidently submitted to the influence of gross beings, composed of coarse inert matter : this he called body : the other, Avhich he supposed to be simple, and of a purer essence, Avas contemplated as acting from itself, and giving motion to the body Avith which it found itself so miraculously united : this he called soul or spirit : the func- tions of the one he denominated physi- cal, corporeal, material; the functions of the other he styled spiritual, intel- lectual. Man, considered relatively to the first. Avas termed the physical man ; vieAved Avith relation to the last, he Avas designated the moral man. These distinctions, although adopted by the greater number of the philo-o- Life is the assemblage of motion natural to an organized being, and motion can only be a property of matter. * When man once imbibes an idea he can- not comprehend, he meditates upon it until he has given it a complete personification. Thus he saw, or fancied he saw, the igneous matter , pervade every thing; he conjectured that it was the only principle of life and activity; and proceeding to imbody it, he gave it his own form, called it JUPITER, and ended by worship- ' ping this image of his own creation as the power from whom he derived every good he ' experienced, every evil he sustained. phers of the present day, are only founded on gratuitous suppositions. Man has ahvays believed he remedied his ignorance of things by inventing Avords to which he could never attach any true sense or meaning. He ima- gined he understood matter, its proper- ties, its faculties, its resources, its dif- ferent combinations, because he had a superficial glimpse of some of its qualities : he has, however, in reality done nothing more than obscure the faint ideas he has been capacitated to form of this matter, by associating it with a substance much less intelligible than itself. It is thus speculative man, in forming words, in multiplying beings, has only plunged himself 'into greater difficulties than those he endeavoured to avoid, and thereby placed obstacles to the progress of his knoAvl edge: when- ever he has been deficient of facts, he has had recourse to conjecture, Avhirh he quickly changed into fancied reali- ties. Thus, his imagination no longer guided by experience, was lost, Avithout hope of return, in the labyrinth of an ideal and intellectual Avorld, to which he had himself given birth ; it was next to impossible to withdraw him from this delusion, to place him in the right road of Avhich nothing but experience can furnish him the clue. Nature points out, that in man himself, as well as in all those objects which act upon him, there is nothing more than matter en- dowed with various properties, diversely modified, and acting by reason of these properties : that man is an organized whole, composed of a variety of matter ; that, like all the other productions of nature, he follows general and knoAvn laws, as Avell as those law.s or modes of action which are peculiar to himself, and unknoAA^n. Thus, Avhen it shall be inquired, AA'hat is man? We say, he is a material being, organized after a peculiar manner ; conformed to a certain mode of think- ing, of feeling, capable of modification in certain modes peculiar to himself, to his organization, to that particular combination of matter Avhich is found assembled in him. If, again, it be asked. Avhat origin Ave give to beings of the human species? We reply, that, like all other being?, man is a production of nature, who OF MAN. resembles the.n in some respects, and finds himself submitted to the same laws ; who differs from them in other respects, and follows particular laws determined by the diversity of his con- formation. If, then, it be demanded, whence came man 1* We answer, our experience on this head does not capacitate us to resolve the question ; but that it cannot interest us, as it suffices for us to know that man exists, and that he is so constituted as to be competent to the effects we wit- ness. But it will be urged, has man always existed ? Has the human species ex- isted from all eternity, or is it only an instantaneous production of nature ? Have there been always men like our- selves? Will there always be such? Have there been, in all times," males and females ? Was there a first man, from whom all others are descended ? Was the animal anterior to the egg, or did the egg precede the animal ? Is this species without beginning? Will it also be without end? The species itself, is it indestructible, or does it pass away like its individuals? Has man always been what he now is, or has he, before he arrived at the state in which we see him, been obliged to pass under an infinity of successive developments ? Can man at last flatter himself with having arrived at a fixed being, or must the human species again change ? If man is the production of nature, it will perhaps be asked, Is this nature com- petent to the production of new beings, and to make the old species disappear? Adopting this supposition, it may be inquired, why nature does not pro- duce under our eyes new beings, new species ? It would appear on reviewing these questions, to be perfectly indifferent, as to the stability of the argument we have used, which side was taken : for want of experience, hypothesis must settle a curiosity that always endeavours to * Theologians will, without hesitation, an- swer this question in the most dogmatic and positive manner. Not only they will tell you whence man came, but also how and icho brought him into existence; and what he said and wh-it he did when he first walked the earth. However, true philosophy says " I do no/ know." spring forward beyond the boundaries prescribed to our mind. This granted, the contemplator of nature will say, that he sees no contradiction in sup- posing the human species, such as it ia at the present day, was either produced in the course of time, or from all eter- nity : he will not perceive any advan- tage that can arise from supposing that it has arrived by different stages, or successive developments, to that state in which it is actually found. Matter is eternal, and necessary, but its forms are evanescent and contingent. It may be asked of man, is he any thing more than matter combined, of which, the form varies every instant ? +../' Notwithstanding, some reflections seem to favour the supposition, and to render more probable the hypothesis that man is a production formed in the course of time ; who is peculiar to the globe he inhabits, and the result of the pecu- liar laws by which it is directed ; who, consequently, can only date his forma- tion as coeval with that of his planet. Existence is essential to the universe, or to the total assemblage of matter essentially varied that presents itself to our contemplation ; but the combina- tions, the forms, are not essential. This granted, although the matter of which the earth is composed has always ex- isted, this earth may not always have had its present form and its actual properties perhaps, it may be a mass detached in the course of time from some other celestial body ; perhaps, it is the result of the spots or encrusta- tions which astronomers discover in the sun's disk, which have had the faculty to diffuse themselves over our planetary system perhaps, the sphere we inhabit may be an extinguished or a displaced comet, which heretofore occupied some other place in the regions of space, and which, consequently, was then compe- tent to produce beings very different from those we now behold spread over its surface, seeing that its then position, its nature, must have rendered its pro- ductions different from those which, at this day, it offers to our view. Whatever may be the supposition adopted, plants, animals, men, can only be regarded as productions inherent in and natural to our globe, in the position or in the circumstances in which it is I actually found : these productions would OF MAN". 43 climates: tables, minerals, are no, sa air, fish only in into the lorrid zone: the reindeers from our climate it is nev s in different cli ^S in the faculties of his the to the make a its productions. h ith the whole, sarily no longer be S the v novv rP T^ ^ S "^ that which il can all productions, SarSeVS bT?Wp ^ and , the JX ho e necessarily what Jrss of co-ordering themselves -this re l live adantatiSn, which is called " order /(;,, ^;if the wan, is called COB/WTO. T which are treated at such as are unable to orlr ,! n, t " ' ' -hat the other own, are inhabited by ig ourselves. But if differs in so marked a manner from the Hottentot, what differ- ence ought we not rationally to suppose between an inhabitant of our planet and one^of Saturn or of Venus ? liged to recur. 46 OF MAN. susceptible in its present position; that he was bora male and female ; that his existence is co-ordinate with that of the globe, under its present position ; that as long as this co-ordi- nation shall subsist, the human species will conserve himself, will propagate himself, according to the impulse and the primitive laws which he has origi- nally received that, if this co-ordina- tion should happen to cease ; if the Dearth, displaced, should cease to receive the same impulse, the same influence, on the part of those causes which actu- ally act upon it and give it energy ; that then, the human species would change to make place for new beings suitable to co-order themselves with the state that should succeed to that which we now see subsist. In thus supposing changes in the position of our globe, the primitive man did, perhaps, differ more from the actual man than the quadruped differs from the insect. Thus, man, the same as every thing else that exists on our planet, as well as in all the others, may be regarded as in a state of con- tinual vicissitude : thus, the last term of the existence of man, is, to us, as unknown, as indistinct, as the first : there is, therefore, no contradiction in the belief, that the species vary inces- santly ; and it is as impossible to know Avhat he will become, as to know what he has been. With respect to those who may ask, why nature does not produce new beings ? we inquire of them in turn, upon what foundation they suppose this fact ? What is it that authorizes them to believe this sterility in nature? Know they, if, in the various combina- tions which she is every instant form- ing, nature be not occupied in producing new beings without the cognizance of these observers? Who has informed them that this nature is not actually assembling in her immense elaboratory the elements suitable to bring to light generations entirely new, that will have nothing in common with those of the species at present existing ?* What * How do we know that the various beings and productions said to have been created at the same time with man, are not the posterior and spontaneous production of Nature 1 Four thousand years ago man became acquainted with the lion : well ! what are foi" Nature, however, the oyster that vege- tatei ai the bottom of the sea' is MS dear and perfect as '.he proud biped who devours it. OF THE SCUL. ;iave extent ? How can a being with- out extent be moveable and put matter in action ? How can a substance, de- void of parts, correspond successively with different parts of space? At any rate all men are agreed in, this position, that motion is the suc- cessive change of the relations of one body with other bodies, or with the dif- ferent parts of space. If that, which is called fyirit, be susceptible of com- municating or receiving motion ; if it acts if it gives play to the organs or body to produce these effects it neces- sarily follows, that this being changes successively its relation, its tendency, its correspondence, the position of its parts, either relatively to the different points of space, or to the different organs of the body which it puts in ac- tion ; but to change its relation with space and with the organs to which it gives impulse, this spirit must have extent, solidity, consequently distinct parts : whenever a substance possesses these qualities, it is what we call mat- ter, and can no longer be regarded as a simple pure being in the sense at- tached to it by the moderns.* * A very cogent question presents itself on this occasion : if this distinct substance, said to form one of the component parts of man, be really what it is reported, and if it be not, it is not what it is described; if it be unknown, if it be not pervious to the senses ; if it be in- visible, by what means did the metaphysi- cians themselves become acquainted with it? How did they form ideas of a substance, that, taking their own account of it, is not, under any of its circumstances, either directly or by analogy cognizable to the mind of man? If they could positively achieve this, there would no longer be any mystery in nature : it would oe as easy to conceive the time when all was nothing, when all shall have passed away, to account for the production of every thing we behold, as to dig in a garden, or read a lecture. Doubt would vanish from the human species ; there could no longer be any difference of opinion, since all must necessarily be of one mind on a subject so accessible to every in- quirer. But it will be replied, the materialist him- self admits, the natural philosophers of all ages have admitted, elements, atoms, beings simple and indivisible, of which bodies are composed : granted ; they have no more : they havp also admitted that many of these atoms, many of thes elements, if not all, are unknown to them : nevertheless, these simple beings, these atoms of the materialist, are not the same thing with the spirit, or the soul of -he metaphysician. When the natural philo- sopher talks of atoms; when he describes Thus it will be seen that those who have supposed in man an immaterial substance, distinguished from his body, have not thoroughly understood them- selves ; indeed they have done nothing more than imagined a negative quality of which they cannot have any correct idea : matter alone is capable of acting on our senses, and without this action nothing would be capable of making it- self known to us. They have not seen that a being without extent, is neither in a capacity to move itself, nor has the capability of communicating motion to the body, since such a being, having no parts, has not the faculty of chang- ing its relation, or its distance, relative- ly to other bodies, nor of exciting mo- tion in the human body, which is it- self material. That which is called our soul, moves itself with us ; now motion is a property of matter this soul gives impulse to the arm ; the arm, moved by it, makes an impression, a blow, that follows the general law of motion : in this case, the force remain- ing the same, if the mass was twofold, the blow would be double. This soul again evinces its materiality in the in- vincible obstacles it encounters on the them as simple beings, he indicates nothing more than that they are homogeneous, pure, without mixture : but then he allows that they have extent consequently parts are separable by thought, although no other natural agent with which he is acquainted is capable of di- viding them that the simple beings of this genus are susceptible of motion, can impart action, receive impulse, are material, are placed in nature, are indestructible ; that con- sequently, if he cannot know them irom them- selves, he can form some idea of them by analogy; thus he has done that intelligibly which the metaphysician would do unintelligi- bly: the latter, with a view -.o render man im- mortal, finding difficulties to his wish, from seeing that the body decayed that it sub- mitted to the great, the universal law has, to solve the difficulty, to remove the impedi- ment, given him a soul, distinctfrom the body, which ne says is exempted from the action of the general law : to account for this, he has called it a spiritual being, whose properties are the negation of all known properties, con- sequently inconceivable : had he, however, had recourse to the atoms of the former; had he made this substance the last possible term of the division of matter, it would at least have been intelligible; it would also have been im- mortal, since, according to the reasonings of all men, whether metaphysician-*, theologians, or natural philosophers, an atom is an inde- structible element, that must exist to all eter- nity. OF THE SOUL. part ol the body. If the arm be moved by its impulse when nothing opposes it, yet this arm can no longer move when it is charged with a weight be- yond its strength. Here then is a v nass of matter that annihilates the im- pulse given by a spiritual cause, which spiritual cause having no analogy with matter, ought not to find more difficulty in moving the whole world than in moving a single atom, nor an atom than the universe. From this it is fair to conclude that such a substance is a chimera ; a being of the imagination : nevertheless such is the being the me- taphysicians have made the contriver and the author of nature ! !* As soon as I feel an impulse or ex- perience motion, I am under the ne- cessity, to acknowledge extent, solidity, density, impenetrability in the sub- stance I see move, or from which I re- ceive impulse : thus, when action is attributed to any cause whatever, I am obliged to consider it material. I may be ignorant of its individual nature, of its mode of action, of its generic pro- perties ; but I cannot deceive myself in general properties which are com- mon to all matter: besides this ignor- ^ce will only be increased, when I shall take that for granted of a being of which I am precluded from forming * As man, in all his speculations, takes himself for the model, he no sooner imagined a spirit within himselfj than giving it extent, he made it universal, then ascribed to it all those causes with which his ignorance pre- vents him from becoming acquainted : thus he identified himself with the supposed author of nature; then availed himself of the suppo- sition to explain the connexion of the soul with the body. His self-complacency pre- vented his perceiving that-he was only en- larging the circle of his errours, by pretending to understand that which it is more than pro- bable he will never know : his self-love pre- vented him from feeling, that, whenever he punished another for not thinking as he did, he committed the greatest injustice, unless he was satisfactorily able to prove that other wrong himself right: that if he himself was obliged to have recourse to hypothesis, to gra- tuitous suppositions, whereon to found his doctrine, that from the very fallibility of his nature these might be erroneous : thus GALI- LEO was persecuted, because the metaphysi- cians and the theologians of his day chose to make others believe what it was evident they did not themselves understand. As to our modern metaphysicians, they may dream of a universal spirit after the manner of the hu- man soul of an infinite intelligence after the | No. II. 7 any idea, which moreover deprives it completely of the faculty of moving and acting. ThuSj a spiritual svib- stance, that moves itself, that gives an impulse to matter, that acts, implies a contradiction, which necessarily infers a total impossibility. The partizans of spirituality believe they answer the difficulties they have themselves accumulated, by saying, " The soul is entire, is whole tinder each point of its extent.'''' If an ab- surd answer will solve difficulties, they have done it ; for after all it will be found, that this point, which is called soul, however insensible, however min- ute, must yet remain something.! But if as much solidity had appeared in the answer as there is a want of it, it must be acknowledged, that in whatever manner the spirit or the soul finds it- self in its extent, when the body moves forward, the soul does not remain be hind ; if so, it has a quality in common with the body peculiar to matter, since it is transferred from place to place jointly with the body. Thus, if even the soul should be immaterial, what conclusion must be drawn 1 Entireh submitted to the motion of the body without this body it would remain dead and inert. This soul would only be part of a twofold machine, necessarily manner of a finite intelligence ; but in so do- ing they do not perceive that this spirit or in- telligence, whether they suppose it finite or in- finite, will not be more convenient or fit to move matter. *./ t According to this answer an infinity of unextended subs'tance, or the same unextend- ed substance repeated an infinity of times, would constitute a substance that has extent, which is absurd ; for, according to this prin- ciple, the human soul would then be as in- finite as God, since it is assumed that God is a being without extent, who is an infinity of times whole in each part of the universe and the same is stated of the human soul ; from whence we must necessarily conclude that God and the soul of man are equally in- finite, unless we suppose unextended sub- stances of different extents, or a God without extent, more extended than the ftiiman soul. Such are, however, the rhapsodies which some of our theological metaphysicians would have thinking beings believe!" With a view of making the Tinman soul immortal, these theologians have spiritualized it, and thus rendered it an unintelligible being ; had they said that the soul was the minutest division of matter, it w-ould then have been intelligi- ble and immortal too, since it would have been an atom, an indissoluble element 50 OP THE SOUL. impelled forward by a concatenation or connexion with the whole. It would resemble a bird, which a child con- ducts at its pleasure by the string with which it is bound. Thus, it is for want of consulting experience, and by not attending to reason, that man has obscured his ideas upon the concealed principle of his motion. If, disentangled from preju- dice, he would contemplate his soul, or the moving principle that acts within him, he would be convinced that it forms part of his body ; that it cannot be distinguished .from it but by abstrac- tion ; and that it is only the body itself .considered relatively with some of its functions, or with those faculties of which its nature and its peculiar or- ganization renders it susceptible. He will also perceive that this soul is obli- ged to undergo the same changes as the body ; that it is born and expands itself with it ; that, like the body, it passes through a state of infancy, a period of weakness, a season of inexperience ; that it enlarges and strengthens itself in the same progression ; that, like the body, it arrives at an adult age, reaches maturity ; that it is then it obtains the faculty of fulfilling certain functions, enjoys reason, and displays more or less wit, judgment, and manly activity ; that like the body, it is subject to those vicissitudes which exterior causes oblige it to undergo by their influence ; that, conjointly with the body, it suffers, enjoys, partakes of its pleasures, shares its pains, is sound when the body is healthy, diseased when the body is op- pressed v/ith. sickness ; that, like the body, it is continually modified by the different degrees of density in the at- mosphere ; by the variety of the sea- sons ; by the various properties of the aliments received into the stomach : in short, he would be obliged to acknowl- edge that at some periods, it manifests visible signs of torpor, decrepitude, and death. In despite of this analogy, or rather this continual identity of the soul with he body, man has been desirous of distinguishing their essence: he has therefore made the soul an inconceiva- ble being; but in order that he might form to himself some idea of it, he was after all obliged to have re- course to material beings and to their manner of acting. In fact, the word spirit presents to the mind no other ideas than those of breathing, of respi- ration, of wind. Thus, when it is said, the soul is a spirit, it really means nothing more than that its mode of ac- tion is like that of breathing, which, though invisible in itself, or acting without being seen, produces, never- theless, very visible effects. But breath is a material cause it is air modified ; it is not therefore a simple, a pure substance, such as the moderns designate under the name of spirit.* Although the word spirit is so very ancient among men, the sense attach- ed to it by the moderns is quite new ; and the idea of spirituality, as admitted at this day, is a recent production of the imagination. Neither Pythagoras nor Plato, however heated their brain, and however decided their taste for the marvellous, appear to have understood by spirit an immaterial substance, or one without extent, such as that of which the moderns have formed the human soul, and the concealed author of motion. The ancients, by the word spirit, were desirous to define matter of an extreme subtilty, and of a purer quality than that which acted grosser on our senses. In consequence, some have regarded the soul as an ethereal substance ; others as igneous matter : others again have compared it to light. Democritus made it consist in motion, consequently gave it a mode of exist- ence. Aristoxenes ? who was himself a musician, made it harmony. Aris- totle regarded the soul as the moving faculty upon which depended the mo- tion of living bodies. The earliest doctors of Christianity had no other idea of the soul than that it was material. f Tertullian, Arnobius, * The Hebrew word liuach, signifies breath, respiration. The Greek word nva/ ( *, means the same thing, and is derived from vsua>, splro. Lactantius states that the Latin word anima comes from the Greek word avepot which signifies wind. Some metaphysicians fearful of seeing too far into human nature, have compounded man of three substances, body, soul, and intellect Z,M, -^"/t^ N*f See Marc. Antonin', Lib. iii. 16. t According to Origen, xirceft*Ti>t, incor- poreus, an epithet given to God, signifies a substance more subtile than that of gross bodies. Tertullian says, Quis autem negabit deum esse corpus, et.-i dens spiritus? The same Tertulhan says, Nos autem animam OF THE SOUL. 51 Clement of Alexandria, Origen, Saint i Justin, IrensMis, have never spoken of j it other than as a corporeal substance. It was reserved for their successors, at a great distance of time, to make the ' human soul, and the soul of the world, j pure spirits ; that is to say, immaterial substances, of which it is impossible to form any accurate idea : by degrees this incomprehensible doctrine of spi- rituality, conformable without doubt to the views of theologians who make it a principle to annihilate reason, pre- vailed over the others:* this doctrine was believed divine and supernatural, because it was inconceivable to man. Those who dared believe that the soul was material, were held as rash, in- considerate madmen, or else treated as enemies to the welfare and happiness of the human race. When man had once renounced experience and abjured his reason, he did nothing more, day after day, than subtilize the ravings of his imagination : he pleased himself by continually sinking deeper into the most unfathomable depths of errour ; and he felicitated himself on his discoveries, on his pretended knowledge, in an exact ratio as his understanding became en- veloped with the clouds of ignorance. Thus, in consequence of man's reason- ing upon false principles, the soul, or moving principle within him, as well as the concealed moving principle of Nature, have been made mere chime- as, mere beings of the imagination.! ' c.orporalcm et hie profitemur, et in suo volu- ininc probamus, habentem proprium genus eubstantiae, soliditatis, per quam quid et sentire et pati possit. V. De Resurrectione Carnis. * The system of spirituality, such as it is admitted at this day, owes all its pretended proofs to Descartes. Although before him the soul had been considered spiritual, he was the first who established that " that which thinks might to be distinguished from matter ;" from whence he concludes that the soul, or that which thinks in man, is a spirit that is to say, a simple and indivisible substance. Would it not have been more consistent with logic and reason to have said that, since man, who is matter and who has no idea but of matter, enjoys the faculty of thought, matter can think that is, it is susceptible of that particular modification called thought. See Bayle's Dictionary, Art Pomponatius and Simonides. t Although there is so little reason and fftiilosophy in the system of spirituality, yet we must confess that it required deep cunning on the part of the selfish theologians who invented it. To render man susceptible of Therefore the doctrine of spirituality offers nothing but vague ideas or ra- ther is the absence of all ideas. What does it present to the mind, but a sub- stance which possesses nothing of which our senses enable us to have a knowledge ? Can it be truth, that man is able to figure to himself a being not material, having neither extent nor parts, which, nevertheless, acts upon matter without having any point of contact, any kind of analogy with it, and which itself receives the impulse of matter by means of material organs, which announce to it the presence of other beings? Is if possible to con- ceive the union of the soul with the body, and to comprehend how this material body can bind, enclose, con- strain, determine a fugitive being which escapes all our senses ? Is it honest to solve these difficulties by saying there is a mystery in them; that they are the effects of an omnipotent power more inconceivable than the human soul and its mode of acting? When, to resolve these problems, man is obliged to have recourse to miracles, and to make the Divinity interfere, does he not avow his own ignorance ? Let us not, then, be surprised at those subtle hypotheses, as ingenious as they are unsatisfactory, to which theological prejudice has obliged the most profound modern speculators to recur, when they have undertaken to reconcile the spi- rituality of- the soul with the physical action of material beings on this incor- poreal substance, its reaction upon these beings, and its union with the body. When the human mind permits itself to be guided by authority without proof- to be led forward by enthusiasm when it renounces the evidence of its senses ; what can it do more than sink into errour ?J rewards and punishments after death, it w,as. necessary to exempt some portion of him frorn corruption and dissolution a doctrine ex- tremely useful to priests, whose great aim is to intimidate, govern, and plunder the igno- rant a doctrine which enables them men to perplex many enlightened persons, wno are equally incapable of comprehending the " sub- lime truths" about the soul and the Divinity ! These honest priests tell us, that this imma- terial soul shall be burnt, or, in other words, shall experience in hell the action of the material element of fire, and we believe them upon their word ! ! ! t Those who wish to form an idea of the shackks imposed by theology on the genius 52 OF THE SOUL. If man wishes to form to himself clear ideas of his soul, let him throw himself back on his experience ; let him renounce his prejudices ; let him avoid theological conjecture ; let him tear the sacred bandage with which he has been blindfolded only to confound his reason. Let the natural philosopher, let the anatomist, let the physician, unite their experience and compare their observa- tions, in order to show what ought to be thought of a substance so disguised under a heap of absurdities : let their discoveries teach moralists the true motive-power that ought to influence the actions of man legislators, the true motives that should excite him to labour to the welfare of society sovereigns, the means of rendering truly happy the subjects committed to their charge. Physical souls have physical wants, and demand physical and real happi- ness, far preferable to that variety of fanciful chimeras Avith Avhich the mind of man has been fed during so many ages. Let us labour to perfect the morality of man ; let us make it agree- able to him; and we shall presently see his morals become better, himself become happier ; his mind become calm and serene ; his will determined to vir- tue by the natural a^d palpable motives held out to him. By the diligence and care which legislators shall bestow on natural philosophy, they will form citi- zens of sound understanding, robust and well constituted, who, finding them- selves happy, will be themselves acces- sary to that useful impulse so necessary 4.0 general happiness. When the body is suffering, when nations are unhappy, the mind cannot be in a proper state. Mcns sana in corpore sano, a sound mind in a sound body, this always makes a good citizen. The more man reflects, the more he will be convinced that the soul, very far from being distinguished from the body, is only the body*itself considered relatively to some of its functions, or to som^of the modes of existing or acting of which it is susceptible whilst it en- of philosophers born under the " Christian dispensation" let them read the metaphysical romances of Leibnitz, Descartes, Malebranche, Cudworth, etc. and coolly examine the inore- nious but rhapsodical systems entitled Ihe Pre-established harmony of occasional causes ; P-'iyjical prc-motion, etc. joys life. Thus, the scul is man con sidered relatively to the faculty he has of feeling, of thinking, and of acting in from his peculiar ay, from his pro- a mode resulting nature ; that is to perties, from his particular organ iza tion ; from the modifications, whether durable or transitory, which the beings who act upon him cause his machine to undergo.* Those who have distinguished the soul from the body, appear only to have distinguished their brain from them- selves. Indeed, the brain is the com- mon centre where all the nerves, dis- tributed through every part of the body, meet and blend themselves : it is by the aid of this interior organ that all those operations are performed which are attributed to the soul : it is the im- pulse, the motion, communicated to the nerve, which modifies the brain: in consequence, it reacts, and gives play to the bodily organs, or rather it acts upon itself, and becomes capable of producing within itself a great variety of motion, which has been designated intellectual faculties. From this it may be seen, that some philosophers have been desirous to make a spiritual substance of the brain.; but it is evidently ignorance that has both given birth to, and accredited this system, which embraces so little of the natural. It is from not having studied himself that man has supposed he was compounded with, an agent essentially different from his body : in examining this body he will find that it is quite useless to recur to hypothesis to explain the various phenomena it presents ; for * When a theologian, obstinately bent on admitting into man two substances essentially different, is asked why he multiplies beings without necessity 1 he will reply, " Because thought cannot be a property of matter." If, then, it be inquired of him, " Cannot God give to matter the faculty of thought?" he will answer, "No! seeing that God cannot do im- possible tilings f But this is atheism, for, according to his principles, it is as impossible that spirit or thought can produce matter, as it is impossible that matter can produce spirit or thought : it must, therefore, be concluded against nim, that the world was not made by a spirit, any more than a spirit was made by the world ; that the world is eternal, and if an eternal spirit exists, then we have two eternal beings, wiuch is absurd. If, therefore, there only dljpieternal substance, it is the whose existence cannot be doubted or de nied. OF THE INTELLECT. 63 Hypothesis can do nothing more than lead him out of the right road. What obscures this question, arises from this, that man cannot see himself: indeed, for this purpose it would be requisite that he could be at one and the same moment both within and without him- self. Man may be compared to an Eolian harp, that issues sounds of it self, and should demand what it is that causes it to give them forth ? it does not perceive that the sensitive quality of its chords causes the air to brace them ; that being so braced, it is rendered sonorous by every gust of wind with which it comes in contact. The more experience we collect, the more we shall be convinced that the word spirit conveys no one sense even to those that invented it ; consequently, cannot be of the least use either in phy- sics or morals. What modern metaphy- sicians believe and understand by the word, is in truth nothing more than an occult power, imagined to explain oc- cult qualities and actions, but which, in fact, explains nothing. Savage na- tions admit of spirits to account to themselves for those effects which to them appear marvellous, and the cause of which they ignore. In attributing to spirits the phenomena of nature, as well as those of the human body, do we, in fact, do any thing more than reason like savages ? Man has filled nature with spirits, because he has almost always been ignorant of the true causes of those effects by which he was astonished. Not being ac- quainted with the powers of nature, he has supposed her to be animated by a great spirit: not understanding the energy of the human frame, he has, in like manner, conjectured it to be ani- mated by a spirit : from this it would appear, that whenever he wished to in- dicate the unknown cause of -the phe- nomena he knew not how to explain in a natural manner, he had recourse to the word spirit. It was according to these principles, that when the Americans first beheld the terrible ef- fects of gunpowder, they ascribed the cause to their Spirits or Divinities : it is by adopting these principles that we now believe in Angels and Demons, and that our ancestors believed in a plurality of Gods, in ghosts, in genii, &c., and pursuing the same track, we ought to attribute to spirits gravitation, electricity, magnetism, &c., &c.* CHAPTER VIII. Of the Intellectual Families; they are all dt. rived from the faculty of feeling. To convince ourselves that the facul- ties called intellectual, are only cer- tain modes of existence, or determinate manners of acting which result from the peculiar organization of the body, we have only to analyze them : we shall then see, that all the operations which are attributed to the soul, are nothing more than certain modifications of the body, of which a substance that is without extent, that has no parts, that is immaterial, is not susceptible. The first faculty we behold in the living man, that from which all his others flow, is feeling: however inex- plicable this faculty may appear on a first view, if it be examined closely, it will be found to be a consequence of the essence, a result of the properties of organized beings ; the same ;. s gravity, magnetism, elasticity, elec- tricity, .&c. result from the essence or nature of some others ; and we shall also find that these last phenomena are not less inexplicable than that of feel- ing. Nevertheless, if we wish to de- fine to ourselves a precise idea of it, we shall find that feeling is a particu- lar manner of being moved peculiar to certain organs of animated bodies, oc- casioned by the presence of a material object that acts upon these organs, and which transmits the impulse or shock to the brain. * It is evident that the notion of spirits, imagined by savages and adopted by the ig- norant, is calculated to retard the progress of knowledge, since it precludes our researches into the true cause of the effects which we see, by keeping the human mind in apathy and sloth. This state of ignorance may be very useful to crafty theologians, but very in- jurious to society. This is the reason, how- ever, why in all "ages priests have persecuted those who have been the first to give natural explanations of the phenomena of nature as witness Anaxagoras, Aristotle, Galileo, Des- cartes and, more recently, Richard Carlile, William Lawrence, Robert Taylor, and Abner Kneeland; to which we may add the name of the learned and venerable Thomas Cooper M. D., lately president of Columbia College, Soi'th Carolina. 54 OF THE INTELLECT. Man only feels by the aid of nerves dispersed through his body, which is itself, to speak correctly, nothing more than a great nerve ; or may be said to resemble a large tree, of which the branches experience the action of the root communicated through the trunk. In man the nerves unite and loose themselves in the brain ; that intestine is the true seat of feeling: like the spider suspended in the centre of his web, it is quickly warned of all the changes that happen to the body, even at the extremities to which it sends its filaments and branches. Experience enables us to ascertain that man ceases to feel in those parts of his body of which the communication with the brain is intercepted ; he feels very little, or not at all, whenever this organ is itself deranged or affected in too lively a manner.* However this may be, the sensibility of the brain, and of all its parts, is a fact. If it be asked, whence comes this property ? We shall reply, it is the result of an arrangement, of a combina- tion, peculiar to the animal ; insomuch, that coarse and insensible matter ceases to be so by animalizing itself, that is to say, by combining and identifying itself with the animal. It is thus that milk, bread, wine, change themselves in the substance of man, who is a sensible being : this insensible matter becomes sensible in combining itself with a sensible whole. Some philosophers * A proof of this is afforded in the Trans- actions of the Royal Academy of Sciences at Paris : they inform us of a man, who had his scull taken off, in the room of which his brain was re-covered with skin ; and in proportion as a pressure was made by the hand on his brain, the man fell into a kind of insensibility \vhich deprived him of all feeling. Bartolin says, the brain of a man is twice as big as that of an ox. This observation had been already made by Aristotle. In the dead body of an idiot dissected by Willis, the brain was found smaller than ordinary : he savs, the greatest difference he found between the parts of the body of this idiot, and those of wiser men, was, that the plexus of the intercostal nerves, which is the mediator between the brain and the heart, was extremely small, accompanied by a less number of nerves than usual. Ac- cording to Willis, the ape is of all animals that which has the largest brain, relatively to j nis size : he is also, after man, that whichhas j the most intelligence ; and this is further con- ! firmed by the name he bears in the soil to ' which he is indigenous, which is orang out- \ ang, or the man beast. There is, therefore, , think that sensibility is a universal quality of matter: in this case it would be useless to seek from whence this property is derived, as we know it by its effects. If this hypothes'^ be ad- mitted, in like manner as two kinds of motion are distinguished in nature, the one called live force, the other dead, or inert force, two sorts of sensibility will be distinguished the one active or live, the other inert or dead. Then to ani- malize a substance, is only to destroy the obstacles that prevent its being active or sensible. In fact, sensibility is either a quality which communicates itsejf like motion, and which is acquired by combination ; or this sensibility is a property inherent in all matter : in both, or either case, an unextended being, without parts, such as the human soul is said to be, can neither be the cause of it, nor submitted to its operation.! The conformation, the arrangement, the texture, the delicacy of the organs, as well exterior as interior, which corn- pose men and animals, render their parts extremely mobile, and make their machine susceptible of being moved with great facility. In a body, which is only a heap of fibres, a mass of nerves, contiguous one to the other, and united in a common centre, always ready to act ; in a whole, composed of fluids and of solids, of which the parts are in equi- librium ; of which the smallest touch each other, are active, rapid in their motion, communicating reciprocally, every reason to believe that it is entirely in the brain that consists the difference that is found not only between man and beasts, but also between the man of wit and the fool ; between the thinking man and he who is ig- norant; between the man of sound under- standing and the madman. And again, a multitude of experience proves that those per- sons who are most accustomed to use their intellectual faculties, have their brain more extended than others : the same has been re- marked of watermen or rowers, that they have arms much larger than other men. t All the parts of nature enjoy the capa- bility to arrive at animation; the obstacle is only in the state not in the quality. Life is the perfection of nature: she has no parts which do not tend to it, and which do not attain it by the same means. Life, in an insect, a dog, a man, has no other difference than that this act is more perfect, relatively to ourselves, in proportion to the structure of the organs : if, therefore, it be asked, what is requi- site to animate a body ? we reply, it needs no foreign aid, it is sufficient that the power ol nature be joined to its organization. KK OF THE INTELLECT. Ul W1I1C1I iliaii o v/ig ***.!.** him susceptible ; although exterior as well as interior causes are continually acting upon him, he does not always feel in a distinct, in a decided manner, the impulse given to his senses : indeed, he does not feel it until it has produced some change, or given some shock to his brain. Thus, although completely environed by air, he does not feel its action until it is so modified as to strike with a sufficient degree of force on his organs and his skin, through which his brain is warned of its presence. Thus, during a profound and tranquil sleep, undisturbed by any dream, man ceases to feel. In short, notwithstanding the continued motion that agitates his frame, man does not appear to feel when this motion acts in a convenient order ; he does not perceive a state of health, but he discovers a state of grief or sickness ; because, in the first, his brain does not receive too lively an impulse, whilst in the others his nerves are contracted, shocked, agitated, with violent and dis- orderly motion, thus giving notice that some cause acts strongly upon them, and impels them in a manner th~* no analogy with their natural this constitutes in him that peculiar mode of existing which he calls grief. On the other hand, it sometimes hap- pens that exterior objects produce very considerable changes on his body, with- out his perceiving them at the moment. Often, in the heat of battle, the soldier perceives not that he is dangerously wounded; because at the time the lapidity, the multiplicity of impetuous motions that assail his brain, do not recur to the true source ui inec ranges, he will find that they have been wholly produced by exterior agents ; they hav been the consequence either of Jus tern perament, of the organization received from his parents, or of the aliments with which his frame has been nouns! ed. * Doctor Clarke says, Conscience is the act of reflecting by means of which I know that I think; ancL that my thoughts, or * belong to me, and not to < against Dodwell. 56 OF THE INTELLECT. besides a thousand trivial, inappreciable causes, which, congregating themselves by degrees, produce in him the gouty humour, the effect of which is to make him feel in a very acute manner. The pain of the gout engenders in his brain an idea or modification which it ac- quires the faculty of representing or reiterating to itself, even when he shall be no longer tormented with the gout : his brain, by a series of motion inte- riorly excited, is again placed in a state analogous to that in which it was when he really experienced this pain : but if he had never felt it, he would have had no idea of this excruciating disease. The visible organs of man's body, by the intervention of which his brain is modified, take the name of senses. The various modifications which his brain receives by the aid of these senses, assume a variety of names. Sensation, perception, idea, are terms that desig- nate nothing more than the changes produced in this interior organ, in con- sequence of impressions made on the exterior organs by bodies acting on them : these changes, considered by themselves, are called sensations ; they adopt the term perception, when the brain is warned of their presence ; ideas, is that state of them in which the brain is able to ascribe them to the objects by which they have been produced. Every sensation, then, is nothing more than the shock given to the or- gans ; every perception, is this shock propagated to the brain: every idea, is the image of the object to Avhich the sensation and the perception is to be ascribed. From whence it will be seen, that if the senses be not moved, there can neither be sensations, per- ceptions, nor ideas: and this will be proved to those who yet doubt so de- monstrable and striking a truth. It is the extreme mobility of which man is capable, owing to his peculiar organization, which distinguishes him from other beings that are called insen- sible or inanimate: and the different degrees of mobility of which the indi- viduals of his species are susceptible, discriminate them from each other, making that incredible variety and that infinity of difference which is to be found, as well in their corporeal facul- ties as in those which are mental or intellectual. From this mobility, more or less remarkable in each human being, results wit, sensibility, imagination, taste, &c. For the present, however, let us follow the operation of the senses : let us examine in what manner they are acted upon and are modified by exterior objects : we will afterwards scrutinize the reaction of the interior organ or brain. The eyes are very delicate, very moveable organs, by means of whieii the sensation of light, or colour, is experienced : these give to the brain a distinct perception, in consequence of which man forms an idea generated by the action of luminous or coloured bodies : as soon as the eyelids are opened, the retina is affected in a pe- culiar manner ; the fluid, the fibres, the nerves, of which they are composed, are excited by shocks which they com municate to the brain, and to which they delineate the images of the bodies from which they have received the impulse ; by this means an idea is acquired of the colour, the size, the form, the distance of these bodies: it is thus that may be explained the mechanism of sight. The mobility and the elasticity of which the skin is rendered susceptible by the fibres and nerve^fcvhich form its texture, account for the rapidity with which this envelope to the human body is affected when applied to any other body : by their agency the brain has notice of its presence, of its extent, of its roughness, of its smoothness, of its surface, of its pressure, of its pon- derosity,- &c. qualities from which the brain derives distinct perceptions, which breed in it a diversity of ideas ; it is this that constitutes the touch. The delicacy of the membrane by which the interior of the nostrils is covered, renders them easily suscepti- ble of irritation, even by the invisible and impalpable corpuscles that emanate from odorous bodies : by this means sensations are excited, the brain has perceptions, and generates ideas : it is this that forms the sense of smelling. The mouth, filled with nervous, sen- sible, moveable. and irritable gianais, saturated with juices suitable to the dissolution of saline substances, is af- fected in a very lively manner by the aliments which pass through it : these I glands transmit to the brain the impres- OF THE INTELLECT. 57 sions received : it is from this mecha- nism that results taste. The ear, whose conformation fits it to receive the various impulses of air diversely modified, communicates to the brain the shocks or sensations; these breed the perception of sound, and generate the idea of sonorous bodies : it is this that constitutes hear- ing: Such are the only means by which man receives sensations, perceptions, ideas. These successive modifications of his brain are effects produced by ob- jects that give impulse to his senses ; they become themselves causes pro- ducing in his mind new modifications, which are denominated thought, re- flection, memory, imagination, judg- ment, will, action; the basis, however, of all these is sensation. To form a precise notion of thought, it will be requisite to examine step by step what passes in man during the presence of any object whatever. Sup- pose, for a moment, this object to be a peach : this fruit makes, at the first view, two different impressions on his eyes; that is to say, it produces two modifications, which are transmitted to the brain, which on this occasion ex- periences two neAt perceptions, has two new ideas or modes of existence, de- signated by the terms colour and ro- tundity ; in consequence, he has an idea of a body possessing roundness and colour : if he places his hand on this fruit, the organ of feeling having been set in action, his hand experiences three new impressions, which are call- ed softness, coolness, weight, from whence result three new perceptions in the brain, and consequently three new ideas : if he approximates this peach to his nose, the organ of smell- ing receives an impulse, which, com- municated to the brain, a new percep- tion arises, by which he acquires a new idea called odour: if he carries this fruit to his mouth, the organ of taste becomes affected in a very lively man- ner; this impulse communicated to the brain, is followed by a perception that generates in him the idea of fla- vour. In reuniting all these impres- sions, or these various modifications of his organs, Avhich have been conse- quently transmitted to- his brain, that is to say, in combining the different NO. II. 8 sensations, perceptions, and ideas, that result from the impulse he has receiv- ed, he has the idea of a whole, which le designates by the name of a peach, with which he can then occupy his thoughts.* What has been said is sufficient to show the generation of sensations, of aerceptions, of ideas, with their asso- ciations, or connexion in the brain : it will be seen that these various modifi- ations are nothing more than the con- sequence of successive impulsions, which the exterior organs transmit to the interior organ, which enjoys the faculty of thought, that is to say, to feel in itself the different modifica- tions it has received, or to perceive the various ideas which it has genera- ted to combine them to separate them to extend them to abridge them to compare them to renew them, &c. From whence it will be seen, that thought is nothing more than the perception of certain modifications which the brain either gives to itself, or has received from exterior objects. Indeed, not only the interior organ perceives the modifications it receives from without, but again it has the fa- culty of modifying itself of consider- ing the changes which take place in it, the motion by which it is agitated in its peculiar 'operations, from which it imbibes new perceptions, new ideas. It is the exercise of this power to fall back upon itself, that is called reflec- tion. From this it will appear, that for man to think and to reflect, is to feel, or perceive within himself the impres- * From this it is sufficiently proved that thought has a commencement, a duration, an end, or rather, a generation, a succession, a dissolution, like all the other modifications of matter; like them, thought is excited, is determined, is increased, is divided, is com- pounded, is simplified, &c. If, therefore, the soul, or the principle that thinks, be indivisi- ble, how does it happen that the soul has the faculty of memory and of forgetfulness ; is capacitated to think successively, to divide, to abstract, to combine, to extend its ideas, to retain them, to lose them? How can it cease to think 1 If forms appear divisible in matter, it is only in considering them by ab- straction, after the method of geometricians ; but this divisibility of form exists not in nature, in which there is neither a point, an atom, nor form perfectly regular; it must therefore be concluded, tha't the forma of matter are not less indivisible than thought. 63 OF THE INTELLECT. sions, the sensations, the ideas, which have been furnished to his brain by those objects which givo impulse to his senses in consequence of the various changes which his brain produced on itself. Memory is the faculty which the brain has of renewing in itself the mo- difications it has received, or rather, to restore itself to a state similar to that in which it has been placed by the sensations, the perceptions, the ideas, produced by exterior objects, in the exact order it received them, without any new action on the part of these objects, or even when these objects are absent; the brain perceives that these modifications assimilate with those it formerly experienced in the presence of the objects to which it re- lates, or attributes them. Memory is faithful when these modifications are precisely the same ; it is treacherous when they differ from those which the organs have exteriorly experienced. Imagination in man is only the fa- culty which the brain has of modifying itself, or of forming to itself new per- ceptions upon the model of those Avhid* it has anteriorly received through the action of exterior objects on the senses. The brain, then, does nothing more than combine ideas which it has al- ready formed, and which it recalls to itself to form a whole, or a collection of modifications, which it has not re- ceived, although the individual ideas, or the parts of which this ideal whole is composed, have been previously communicated to it. It is thus, man forms to himself the idea of Centaurs* of Hyppogri/sJ of Gods,J and De- mons.1[ By memory, the brain renews in itself the sensations, the perceptions, the ideas, which it has received, and represents to itself the objects which have actually moved its organs. By imagination it combines them various- ly; forms objects or wholes in their place, which have not moved its organs, although it is perfectly acquainted with the elements or ideas of which it com- poses them. It is thus that man, by combining a great number of ideas bor- * A being composed of a man and a horse. t A being composed of a horse with wings, t A nondescript! f A gentleman with two horns, a tail, and a cloven fxt. rowed from* himself, such as justice, wisdom, goodness, intelligence, &c., has, by the aid of imagination, formed an imaginary whole, which he has call- ed God. Judgment, is the faculty which the brain possesses of comparing with each other the modifications it receives, the ideas it engenders, or which it has the power of awakening within itself, to the end that it may discover their rela- tions or their effects. Will, is a modification of the brain, by which it is disposed to action, that is to say, to give such an impulse to the organs of the body as can induce it to act in a manner that will procure for itself what is requisite to modify it in a mode analogous to its own existence, or to enable it to avoid that by which it can be injured. To will is to be dis- posed to action. The exterior objects, or the interior ideas, which give birth to this disposition, are called motives, because they are the springs or move- ments which determine it to act, that is to say, Avhich give play to the organs of the body. Thus voluntary actions are the motion of the body, determined by the modification of the brain. Fruit hanging on a tree, through the agency of the visual organs modifies the brain in such a manner as to dispose the arm to stretch itself forth to cull it ; again it modifies it in another manner, by which it excites the hand to carry it to the mouth. All the modifications which the in- terior organ or the brain receives ; all the sensations all the perceptions all the ideas that are generated by the objects which give impulse to the senses, or which it renews within it- self by its own peculiar faculties, are either favourable or prejudicial to man's mode of existence, whether that be transitory or habitual: they dispose the interior organ to action, which it ex- ercises by reason of its own peculiar energy : this action is not, however, the same in all the individuals of the human species, depending much on their respective temperaments. From hence the passions have their birth: these are more or less violent : they are, however, nothing more than the mo- tion of the will, determined by the ob- jects which give it activity conse- quently, composed of the analogy 01 OF THE INTELLECT. 59 ot the discordance which is found between these objects and man's pecu- liar mode of existence, or the force of his temperament. From this it results, that the passions are modes of exist- ence or modifications of the brain, which either attract or repel those ob- jects by which man is surrounded ; that consequently they are submitted in their action to'the physical laws of attraction and repulsion. The faculty of perceiving, or of being modified, as well by itself as by ex- terior objects, which the brain enjoys, is sometimes designated by the term understanding. To the assemblage of the various faculties of which this interior organ is susceptible, is applied the name of intelligence. To a de- termined mode, in which the brain ex- ercises the faculties peculiar to itself, is given the appellation of reason. The dispositions, or the modifications of the brain, some of them constant, others transitory, which give impulse to the beings of the human species, causing them to act, are styled wit, wisdom, goodness, prudence, virtue, . la short, as there will be an oppor- tunity presently to prove, all the intel- lectual faculties, that is to say, all the modes of action attributed to the soul, may be reduced to the modifications, to the qualities, to the modes of exist- ence, to the changes produced by the motion of the brain, which is visibly in man the seat of feeling the princi- ple of all his actions. These modifi- cations are to be attributed to the ob- jects that strike on his senses ; of which the impression is transmitted to the brain, or rather to the ideas which the perceptions caused by the action of these objects on his senses have there generated, and which it has th< faculty to reproduce. This brail noves itself in its turn, reacts upon .tself, gives play to the organs, whicl concentrate themselves in it, or which rather are nothing more than an exten sion of its own peculiar substance. I is thus the concealed motion of the in tenor organ renders itself sensible fr outward and visible signs. The brain affected by a modification which i called fear, diffuses a paleness ove the countenance, excites a tremulou motion in the limbs, called trembling The brain, affected by a sensation of grief, causes tears to flow from the yes, even without being moved by any tterior object ; an idea which it re- aces with great strength, suffices to ive it very lively modifications, which isibly have an influence on the whole ame. In all this nothing more is to be per- eived than the same substance which cts diversely on the various parts of ic body. If it be objected, that this nechanism does not sufficiently ex- lain the principles of the motion, or le faculties of the soul ; we reply, lat it is in the same situation as all ic other bodies of nature, in which le most simple motion, the most ordi- ary phenomena, the most common nodes of action, are inexplicable mys- eries, of which we shall never be able o fathom the first principles. Indeed, ow can we flatter ourselves we shall ver be enabled to compass the true irinciple of that gravity by which a tone falls? Are we acquainted with he mechanism which produces attrac- ion in some substances, repulsion in ithers 1 Are we in a condition to xplain the communication of motion rom one body to another 1 But it may >e fairly asked ; are the difficulties that occur, when attempting to explain the manner in which the soul acts, removed, jy making it a spiritual being, a sub- stance of which we have not, nor can- not form one idea, which consequently must bewilder all the notions we are :apable of forming to ourselves of this being? Let us then be contented to know that the soul moves itself, modi- fies itself, in consequence of material causes, which act upon it, which give it activity; from whence the conclusion may be said to flow consecutively, that all its operations, all its faculties, prove that it is itself material. CHAPTER IX. Of the Diversity of the Intellectual Faculties; 'they depend on Physical Causes, as do their Moral Qualities. The Natural Principles of Society. Of Morals. Of Politics. NATURE is under the necessity to diversify all her works. Elementary matter, different in its essence, must necessarily form different beings, va- 60 OF THE INTELLECT. rious In their combinations, in their properties, in their modes of action, in their manner of existence. There is not, neither can there be, two beings, two combinations, which are mathe- matically and rigorously the same ; because the place, the circumstances, the relations, the proportions, the modi- fications, never being exactly alike, the beings that result can never bear a perfect resemblance to each other: and their modes of action must of necessity vary in something, even when we be- lieve we find between them the greatest conformity. In consequence of this principle, which every thing we see conspires to prove to be a truth, there are not two individuals of the human species, who have precisely the same traits ; who think exactly in the same manner; who view things under the same iden- tical point of sight ; who have decidedly the same ideas ; consequently no two of them have uniformly the same sys- tem of conduct. The visible organs of man, as well as his concealed organs, have indeed some analogy, some com- mon points of resemblance, some gene- ral conformity, which makes them appear, when viewed in the gross, to be affected in the same manner by certain causes ; but the difference is infinite in the detail. The human soul may be compared to those instruments of which the chords, already diversified in themselves by the manner in which they have been spun, are also strung upon different notes : struck by the same impulse, each chord gives forth the sound that is peculiar to itself, that is to say, that which depends on its texture, its tension, its volume, on the momentary state in which it is placed by the circumambient air. It is this that produces the diversified spectacle, the varied scene, which the moral world offers^* our view : it is from this that results the striking contrariety that is to be found in the minds, in the facul- ties, in the passions, in the energies, in the taste, in the imagination, in the ideas, in the opinions of man : this diversity is as great as that of his physical powers : like them it depends on his temperament, which is as much varied as his physiognomy. This va- riety gives birth to that continual series of action and reaction which constitutes the life of the moral world : from this discordance results the harmony which at once maintains and preserves the human race. The diversity found among the indi- viduals of the human species, causes inequalities between man and man : this inequality constitutes the support of society. If all men were equal in their bodily powers, in their mental talents, they would not have any occa- sion for each other: it is the variation of his faculties, the inequality which this places him in with regard to his fellows, that renders man necessary to man : without these he would live by himself, he would remain an isolated being. From whence it may be per- ceived that this inequality, of which man so often complains without cause ; this impossibility each man finds when in an isolated state, when left to him- self, when unassociated with his fellow men, to labour efficaciously to his own welfare, to make his own security, to ensure his own conservation, places him in the happy situation of associating with his like, of depending on his fellow associates, of meriting their succour, of propitiating them to his views, of attracting their regard, of calling in their aid to chase away, by common and united efforts, that which would have the power to trouble or derange the order of his existence. In conse- quence of man's diversity and of the inequality that results, the weaker is obliged to seek the protection of the stronger : this, in his turn, recurs to the understanding, to the talents, to the industry of the weaker, whenever his judgment points out he can be useful to him : this natural inequality furnishes the reason why nations distinguish those citizens who have rendered their country' eminent services ; and it is in consequence of his exigencies ifiat man honours, that he recompenses those whose understanding, whose good deeds, whose assistance, whose virtues, have procured for him real or supposed advantages, pleasure?, or agreeable sen- sations of any sort: it is by this means that genius gains an ascendency over the mind of man, and obliges a whole people to acknowledge its power. Thus. the diversity, the inequality of the facul- ties, as well corporeal, as mental or in- tellectual, render man necessary to hii OF THE INTELLECT. fellow man, makes him a social being, and incontestably proves to him the necessity of morals. According to this diversity of facul- ties, the individuals of the human spe- cies are divided into different classes, each in proportion to the effects pro- duced, to the different qualities that may be remarked : all these varieties in man flow from the individual pro- perties of his mind, or from the particu- lar modification Of his brain. It is thus that wit, imagination, sensibility, ta- lents, &c. diversify to infinity the differ- ences that are to be found in man. It is thus that some are called good, others wicked ; some are denominated virtu- ous, others vicious ; some are ranked as learned, others as ignorant ; some are considered reasonable, others unreason- able, &c. If all the various faculties attributed to the soul are examined, it will be found that like those of the body they are to be ascribed to physical causes, to which it will be very easy to recur. It will be found that the powers of the soul are the same as those of the body ; that they always depend on the organi- zation of this body, on its peculiar properties, on the permanent or transi- tory modifications that it undergoes ; in a word, on its temperament. Temperament, is, in each individual, the habitual state in which he finds the fluids and the solids of which his body is composed. This temperament varies by reason of the elements or matter that predominates in him; in consequence of the different combinations, of the various modifications, which this matter, diversi- fied in itself, undergoes in his machine. Thus, m one the blood is superabundant ; in another, the bile; in a third, phlegm, Ac. It is from nature from his parents from causes, which from the first mo- ment of his existence have unceasingly modified him, that man derives his tem- perament. It is in his mother's womb that he has attracted the matter which, during his whole life, shall have an influence on his intellectual faculties on his energies on his passions on his conduct. The very nourishment he takes, the quality of the air he respires, (he climate he inhabits, the education he receives, the ideas that are presented to him, the opinions he imbibes, modify this temperament. As these circum- stances can never be rigorously the same in every point for any two men, it is by no means surprising that such an amazing variety, so great a contra- riety, should be found in man, or that there should exist as many different temperaments as there are individuals in the human species. Thus, although man may bear a gene- ral resemblance, he differs essentially, as well by the texture of his fibres, the disposition of his nerves, as by the nature, the quality, the quantity of mat- ter that gives them play, and sets his organs in motion. Man, already differ- ent from his fellow, by the elasticity of his fibres, the tension of his nerves, becomes still more distinguished by a variety of other circumstances : he is more active, more robust, when he receives nourishing aliments, when he drinks wine, when he takes exercise ; whilst another, who drinks nothing but water, who takes less juicy nourish- ment, who languishes in idleness, shall be sluggish and feeble. All these causes have necessarily an influence on the mind, on the passions, on the will, in a word, on what are called the intellectual faculties. Thus, it may be observed, that a man of a san- guine constitution is commonly lively, ingenious, full of imagination, passion- ate, voluptuous, enterprising ; whilst the phlegmatic man is dull, of a heavy understanding, slow of conception, in- active, difficult to be moved, pusillani- mous, without imagination, or possess- ing it in a less lively degree, incapable of taking any strong measures, or of willing resolutely. If experience was consulted in the room of prejudice, the physician would collect from morals the key to the human heart : and in curing the body, he would sometimes be assured of curing the mind. Man, in making a spiritual substance of his soul, has contented himself with administering to it spiritual remedies, which either have no influence over his tempera- ment, or do it an injury. The doctrine of the spirituality of the soul has ren- dered morals a conjectural science, that does not furnish a knowledge of the true motives which ought to be put in activity in order to influence man tr. his welfare. If, calling experience tc OF THE INTELLECT. his assistance, man sought out the elements which form the basis of his temperament, or of the greater number of the individuals composing a nation; he would then discover what would be most proper for him, that which could be most convenient to his mode of existence, which could most conduce to his true interest ; what laws would be necessary to his happiness what institutions would be most useful for him what regulations would be most beneficial. In short, morals and poli- tics would be equally enabled to draw from materialism, advantages which the dogma of spirituality can never supply, of which it even precludes the idea. Man will ever remain a mystery to those who shall obstinately persist in viewing him with eyes prepossessed by theology, or to those who shall per- tinaciously attribute his actions to a principle of which it is impossible to form to themselves any distinct idea. When man shall be seriously inclined to understand himself, let him sedu- lously endeavour to discover the matter that enters into his combination, which constitutes his temperament ; these dis- coveries will furnish him with the clue to the nature of his desires, to the qua- lity of his passions, to the bent of his inclinations, and will enable him to foresee his conduct on given occasions; will indicate the remedies that may be successfully employed to correct the lefects of a vicious organization and of a temperament as injurious to him- self as to the society of which he is a member. Indeed, it is not to be doubted that man's temperament is capable of being corrected, of being modified, of being changed, by causes as physical as the matter of which it is constituted. We are all in some measure capable of forming our own temperament : a man of a sanguine constitution, by taking less juicy nourishment, by abating its quantity, by abstaining from strong liquor, &c., may achieve the correction of the nature, the quality, the quantity, the tendency, the motion of the fluids, which predominate in his machine. A bilious man, or one who is melan- choly, may, by the aid of certain reme- dies, diminish the mass of this bilious fluid ; he may correct the blemish of his humours by the assistance of exer- cise ; he may dissipate his gloom by the gaiety which results from increased motion. A European transplanted into Hindostan will by degrees become quite a different man in his humours, in hig ideas, in his temperament, and in his character. Although but few experiments have been made with a view to learn what constitutes the temperament of man, there are still enough if he would but deign to make use of them, or if he would vouchsafe to apply to useful purposes the little experience he has gleaned. It would appear, speaking generally, that the igneous principle which chymists designate under the name of phlogiston, or inflammable matter, is that which in man yields him the most active life, furnishes him with the greatest energy, affords, the reatest mobility to his frame, supplies the greatest spring to his organs, gives the greatest elasticity to his fibres, the greatest tension to his nerves, the great- est rapidity to his fluids. From these causes, which are entirely material, commonly result the dispositions or faculties, called sensibility, wit, ima- gination, genius, vivacity, &c., which give the tone to the passions, to the will, to the moral actions of man. In this sense, it is with great justice we apply the expressions, " warmth of soul," " ardency of imagination," " fire of genius," &c.* It is this fiery element, diffused in different doses, distributed in various proportions, through the beings of the tiuman species, that sets man in motion, gives him activity, supplies him with animal heat, and wh^ch, if we may be allowed the expression, renders him more or less alive. This igneous mat- ter, so active, so subtile, dissipates itself with great facility, then requires to be reinstated in his system by means of aliments that contain it, which there- jy become proper to restore his machine, ;o lend new warmth to the brain, to iurnish it with the elasticity requisite * It would not be unreasonable to suppose, that what physicians call the nervous fluid, which so promptly gives notice to the brair of all that happens to the body, is nothing more than electric matter; that the various )roportions of this matter, diffused through lis system, is the cause of that great diversity to be discovered in the human being, and in the faculties he possesses. OF THE INTELLECT. 63 vo tne performance of those functions I lectual or moral qualities. To feel, which are called intellectual. It is this according to what has been said, is to ardent matter, contained in wine, in strong liquor, that gives to the most torpid, to the dullest, to the most slug- gish man, a vivacity, of which, without it, he would be incapable, and which urges even the coward on to battle. When this fiery element is too abundant in man, whilst he is labouring under certain diseases, it plunges him into delirium ; when it is in too weak, or in too small a quantity, he swoons, he sinks to the earth. This igneous matter diminishes in his old age, it totally dissipates at his death.* If the intellectual faculties of man, or his moral qualities, be examined according to the principles here laid down, the conviction must be com- plete, that they are to be attributed to material causes, which have an influ- ence more or less marked, either transi- tory or durable over his peculiar organi- zation. But where does he derive this organization except it be from the pa- rents from whom he receives the ele- ments of a machine necessarily analo- gous to their own 1 From whence does he derive the greater or less quantity of igneous matter, or vivifying heat, which gives the tone to his mental qualities 1 It is from the mother, who bore him in her womb, Avho has com- municated to him a portion of that fire with which she was herself animated, which circulated through her veins with her blood : it is from the aliments that have nourished him : it is from the cli- mate he inhabits : it is from the atmo- sphere that surrounds him: for, all these causes have an influence over his fluids, over his solids, and decide on his natu- ral dispositions. In examining these dispositions, from whence his faculties depend, it will ever be found that they are corporeal and material, The most prominent of these dis- positions in man, is that physical sensi- bility from which flows all his intel- * If we reflect a little we shall find that heat is the principle of life. It is by means of heat that beings pass from inaction into mo- tion from repose into fermentation from a state of torpor into that of active life. Thi is proved by the egg, which heat hatches into a chicken ; and this example, among thou- sands which we might cite, must suffice to establish the fact, that without heat, there is no generation. eceive an impulse, to be moved, and have a consciousness of thft changes )perated on his system. To have sensi- dlity, is nothing more than to be so onstituted as to feel promptly, and in 1 very lively manner, the impressions af those objects which act upon him. A. sensible soul, is only man's brain lisposed in a mode to receive the motion communicated to it with facility and tvith promptness, by giving an instan- aneous impulse to the organs. Thus, he man is called sensible, whom the sight of the distressed, the contempla- lon of the unhappy, the recital of a melancholy tale, the witnessing of an afflicting catastrophe, or the idea of a dreadful spectacle, touches in so lively a manner as to enable the brain to give )lay to his lachrymal organs, which cause him to shed tears ; ' a sign by which we recognise the effect of ex- reme anguish in the human being. The man in whom musical sounds excite a degree of pleasure, or produce very remarkable effects, is said to have a sensible or a fine ear. In short, when t is perceived that eloquence, the beauty of the arts, the various objects that strike his senses, excite in him very lively emotions, he is said to pos- sess a soul full of sensibility .f Wit is a consequence of this physical sensibility ; indeed, wit is nothing more than the facility which some beings of the human species possess of seizing with promptitude, of developing with quickness a whole, with its different relations to other ob'-ects. Genius, is the facility with which some men com- prehend this whole, and its various relations, when they are difficult to be known, but useful to forward great and mighty projects. Wit, may be com- pared to a piercing eye, which perceived things quickly. Genius, is an eye that comprehends at one view all the points t Compassion depends on physical sensi- bility, which is never the same in all men. How absurd, then, to make compassion the source of all our moral ideas, nnd of those feelings which we experience for our iellpw creatures. Not only all men are not alike sensible, but there are many in whom sensi- bility has not been developed such as in kings, priests, statesmen, " And the hired bravoes who defend The tyrant's throne the bullies of his fear!" 64 OF THE INTELLECT. H of an extended horizon, or what the French term coup d'&il. True wit, is that which perceives objects with their rel&ions, such as they really are. False wit, is that which catches at relations which do not apply to the object, or which arises from some blemish in the organization. True wit resembles the direction on a hand-post. Imagination, is the faculty of com- bining with promptitude ideas or images ; it consists in the power man possesses of reproducing with ease the modifica- tions of his brain ; of connecting them, and of attaching them to the objects to which they are suitable. When imagi- nation does this, it gives pleasure ; its fictions are approved, it embellishes nature, it is a proof of the soundness of the mind, it aids truth: Avhen, on the contrary, it combines ideas not formed to associate themselves with each other ; when it paints nothing but disagreeable phantoms, it disgusts. Thus poetry, calculated to render nature more pathetic, more touching, pleases when it adorns the object it portrays with all those beauties with which it can with propriety be associated. True, it only creates ideal beings, but as they move us agreeably, we forgive the illu- sions it has held forth on account of the pleasure we have reaped from them. The hideous okimeras of superstition displease, because they are nothing more than the productions of a dis- tempered imagination, which can only awaken afflicting sensations. Imagination, when it wanders, pro- duces fanaticism religious terrours inconsiderate zeal phrensy the most enormous crimes. When imagination is well regulated, it gives birth to a strong predilection for useful objects an energetic passion for virtue an enthusiastic love of our country the most ardent friendship : the man who is divested of imagination, is commonly one in whose torpid constitution phlegm predominates over that sacred fire, which is the great principle of his mobility, of his warmth of sentiment, and which vivifies all his intellectual faculties. There must be enthusiasm for transcendent virtues as well as for atrocious crimes. Enthusiasm places the soul, or brain, in a state similar to that of drunkenness ; both the one and the other excite in man that rapidity of j motion which is approved when good results, but which is called folly, de- lirium, crime, fury, when "it produces nothing but disorder. The mind is out of order, it is incapa- ble of judging sanely, and the imagina- tion is badly regulated, whenever man's organization is not so modified as to perform its functions with precision. At each moment of his existence man gathers experience ; every sensation he has. furnishes a fact that deposites in his brain an idea, which his memory recalls with more or less fidelity : these facts connect themselves, these ideas are associated, and their chain constitutes experience and science. Knowledge, is that consciousness which arises from reiterated experience, made with pre- cision of the sensations, of the ideas, of the effects which an object is capable of producing, either in ourselves or in othersrf-All science must be founded on trurh. % Truth itself rests on the constant and faithful relation of our senses. Thus truth is that conformity or perpetual affinity which man's senses, when well constituted, when aided by experience, discover to him, between the objects of which he has a know- ledge, and the qualities with which he clothes them. In short, truth is nothing more than the just, the precise associa- tion of his ideas. But how can he without experience, assure himself of the accuracy of this association ? How, if he do not reiterate this experience, can he compare it 1 If his senses are vitiated, how is it possible they can convey to him, with precision, the sensations, the facts, with which they store his brain ? It is only by multi- plied, by diversified, by repeated expe- rience, that he is enabled to rectify the errours of his first conceptions. Man is in errour every time his organs, either originally defective in their na- ture, or vitiated by the durable or transi- tory modifications which they undergo, render him incapable of judging soundly of objects. Errour consists in the false association of ideas, by which qualities are attributed to objects which they do not possess. Man is in errour, when he supposes those beings really to have existence which have no local habita- tion but in his own imagination : he is in errour, when he associates the idea of happiness with objects capable of OF THE INTELLECT. injuring him, whether immediately or by remote consequences which he can- not foresee. But how can he foresee effects of which he has not yet any knowledge ? It is by the aid of experience. By the assistance which this experience affords it is known, that analogous, or like causes, produce analogous or like ef- fects: memory, by recalling these effects, enables him to form a judgment of those he may expect, whether it be from the same causes, or from causes that bear a relation to those of which he has al- ready experienced the action. From this it will appear, that prudence, fore- sight, are faculties that grow out of experience. If he has felt that fire excited in his organs a painful sensa- tion, this experience suffices him to fore- see that fire so applied, will eventually excite the same sensations. If he has discovered that certain actions, on his part, stirred up the hatred, and elicited the contempt of others, this experience sufficiently enables him to foresee, that every time he shall act in a similar manner, he will be either hated or despised. The faculty man has 'of gathering experience, of recalling it to himself, of foreseeing effects, by which he is enabled to avoid whatever may have the power to injure him, or procure that which may be useful to the con- servation of his existence and his felici- ty, which is the sole end of all his actions, whether corporeal or mental, constitutes that which in one word is designated under the name of reason. Sentiment, imagination, temperament, may be capable of leading him astray ; may have the power to deceive him ; but experience and reflection will place him again in the right road, and teach him what can really conduct him to .lappiness. From this it will appear, .hat reason is man's nature modified by experience, moulded by judgment regulated by reflection : it supposes a sober temperament, a sound mind, a well regulated imagination, a know- ledge of truth grounded upon tried expe- rience ; in fact, prudence and foresight : and this proves, that, although nothing is more common than the assertion that man is a reasonable being, yet there are but a very small number of the individuals who compose the human No. III. 9 species who really enjoy the faculty of reason, or who combine the dispositions and the experience by which it is con- stituted. It ought not then to excite surprise hat the individuals of the human race who are in a capacity to make true xperience, are so few in number. VJan, when he is born, brings with lini organs susceptible of receiving mpulse, and of collecting experience ; Dut whether it be from the vice of his system, the imperfection of his organi- zation, or from those causes by which it is modified, his experience is false, liis ideas are confused, his images are badly associated, his judgment is erro- neous, his brain is saturated with vicious systems, which necessarily have an in- fluence over his conduct, and continu- ally disturb his reason. Man's senses, as it has been shown, are the only means by which he is en- abled to ascertain whether his opinions are true or false, whether his conduct is useful to himself, and whether it is advantageous or disadvantageous. But that his senses may be competent to make a faithful relation, or be in a ca- pacity to impress true ideas on his brain, it is requisite they should be sound ; that is to say, in the state ne- cessary to maintain his existence in that order which is suitable to his pre- servation and his permanent felicity. It is also indispensable that his brain itself should be healthy, or in the pro- per state to enable it to fulfil its func- tions with precision and to exercise its faculties with vigour. It is necessary that memory should faithfully retrace its anterior sensations and ideas, to the end, that he may be competent to judge or to foresee the effects he may have to hope or to fear from those actions to which he may be determined by his will. If his interior or exterior organs be defective, whether by their natural conformation, or from those causes by which they are regulated, he feels but imperfectly, and in a manner less dis- tinct than is requisite ; his ideas are either false or suspicious; he judges badly ; he is in a delusion, or in a state of ebriety that prevents his grasping the true relation of things. In short, if his memory be faulty, if it be treacher- ous, his reflection is void ; his imagina- tion leads him astray ; his mind de- 66 OF THE INTELLECT. ceives him ; whilst the sensibility of his organs, simultaneously assailed by a crowd of impressions, oppose him to prudence, to foresight, and to the ex- ercise of his reason. On the other hand, if the confirmation of his organs, as it happens with those of a phleg- matic temperament, does not permit him to move, except with feebleness and in a sluggish manner, his experi- ence is slow, and frequently unprofit- able. The tortoise and the butterfly are alike incapable of preventing their destruction. The stupid man and he who is intoxicated, are in that state which renders it impossible for them to attain the end they have in view. But what is the aim of man in the sphere he occupies? It is to preserve himself and to render his existence happy. It becomes, then, of the ut- most' importance that he should un- derstand the true means which reason points out, which prudence teaches him to use, in order that he may always and with certainty arrive at the end which he proposes to himself. These are his natural faculties, his mind, his talents, his industry, his actions deter- mined by those passions of which his nature renders him susceptible, and which give more or less activity to his will. Experience and reason show him again that the men with whom he is associated, are necessary to him are capable of contributing to his hap- piness and to his pleasures, and are competent to assist him by those facul- ties which are peculiar to them : expe- rience teaches him the mode he must adopt to induce them to concur in his designs to determine them to will and to act in his favour. This points out to him the actions they approve those which displease them the conduct which attracts them that which re- pels them the judgment by which they are swayed the advantages that occur, the prejudicial effects that result to him from their various modes of existence and manner of acting. This experience furnishes him with the ideas of virtue and of vice of justice and of injustice of goodness and of wicked- ness of decency and of indecency of probity and of knavery. In short, he learns to form a judgment of men, to estimate their actions to distin- guish the various sentiments excited in them, according to the diversity of tho-e effects which they make him ex- perience. It is upon the necessary diversity of these effects that is founded the dis- crimination between good and evil between virtue and vice ; distinctions which do not rest, as some thinkers have believed, on the conventions made between men ; still less upon the chi- merical will of a supernatural being, but upon the invariable, the eternal re- lations that subsist between beings of the human species congregated to- gether, and living in society relations which will have existence as long as man shall remain, and as long as so- ciety shall continue to exist. Thus virtue is every thing that is truly and constantly useful to the indi- viduals of the human race living to- gether in society ; vice, every thing that is injurious to them. The greatest virtues are those which procure for man the most durable and solid advan- tages : the greatest vices, are those which most disturb his tendency to happiness, and which most interrupt the necessary order of society. The virtuous man is he whose actions tend uniformly to the welfare of his fellow creatures. The vicious man is he whose conduct tends to the misery of those with whom he lives ; from whence his own peculiar misery most commonly results. Every thing that procures for man a true and a perma- nent happiness, is reasonable ; every thing that disturbs his individual feli- city, or that of the beings necessary to his happiness, is foolish or unreasona- ble. The man who injures others, is wicked the man who injures himself, is an imprudent being, who neither has a knowledge of reason, of his own pe- culiar interests, nor of truth. Man's duties are the means pointed out to him by experience and reason, by which he is to arrive at that goal he proposes to himself: these duties are the necessary consequence of the rela- tions subsisting between mortals who equally desire happiness, and who are equally anxious to preserve their exist- ence. When it is said, these duties compel him, it signifies nothing more than that, without taking these means, he could not reach the end proposed to him by his nature. Thus, moral obli- OF THE INTELLECT. 67 gation is the necessity of employing the natural means to render the beings with whom he lives happy, to the end that he may determine them in turn, to contribute to his own individual happiness : his obligation towarus him- self is the necessity he is under to take those means without which he would be incapable to conserve himself, and render his existence solidly happy. Morals, like the universe, are founded upon necessity, or upon the eternal re- lation of things. Happiness, is a mode of existence of which man naturally wishes the duration, or in which he is willing to continue. It is measured by its dura- tion and its vivacity. The greatest happiness is that which has the longest continuance : transient happiness, or that which has only a short duration, is called pleasure; the more lively it is, the more fugitive, because man's senses are only susceptible of a certain quantum of motion. When pleasure exceeds this given quantity, it is chang- ed into anguish, or into that painful mode of existence of which he ardently desires the cessation: this is the rea- son why pleasure and pain frequently so closely approximate each other as scarcely to be discriminated. Immod- erate pleasure is the forerunner of re- gret. It is succeeded by ennui and weariness, and it ends in disgust: transient happiness frequently converts itself into durable misfortune. Ac- cording to these principles, it will be seen that man, who in each moment of his duration seeks necessarily after happiness, ought, when he is reason- able, to regulate his pleasures, and to refuse himself to all those of which the indulgence would be succeeded by re- gret or pain ; whilst he should endea- vour to procure for himself the most permanent felicity. Happiness cannot be the same for all the beings of the human species ; the same pleasures cannot equally af- fect men whose confirmation is differ- ent, whose modification is diverse. This, no doubt, is the true reason why the greater number of moral philoso- phers are so little in accord upon those objects in which they have made man's happiness consist, as well as on the means by which it may be obtained. Nevertheless, in general happiness ap- pears to be a state, whether momentary or durable, in which man readily ac- quiesces, because he finds it conform- able to his being. This state results from the accord which is found between himself and those circumstances in which he has been placed by nature : or, if it be preferred, happiness is the co-ordination of man with the causes that give him impulse. The ideas which man forms to him- self of happiness, depend not only on his temperament, on his individual con- formation, but also upon the habits he has contracted. Habit, is in man a mode of existence of thinking of accing, which his organs, as well in- terior as exterior, contract by the frequent reiteration of the same mo- tion, from whence results the faculty of performing these actions with prompti- tude and with facility. If things be attentively considered, it will be found that almost the whole conduct of man, the entire system of his actions, his occupations, his con- nexions, his studies, his amusements, his manners, his customs, his very gar- ments, even his aliments, are the ef- fect of habit. He owes equally to habit the facility with which he exercises his mental faculties of thought, of judg- ment, of wit, of reason, of taste, &c. It is to habit he owes the greater part of his inclinations, of his desires, of hi^ opinions, of his prejudices, of the ideas, true or false, he forms to himself of his welfare. In short, it is to habit, consecrated by time, that he owes those errours into which every thing strives to precipitate him, and to prevent him from emancipating himself. It is habit that attaches him either to virtue or to vice.* Man is so much modified by habit, that it is frequently confounded with his nature : from hence results, as will presently be seen, those opinions, or those ideas which he has called innate, * Experience proves that the first crime is always accompanied by more pangs of re- morse than the second ; this again, by more than the third, and so on to those that follow. A first action is the commencement of a habit ; those which succeed confirm it : by force of combating the obstacles that prevent the commission of criminal actions, man arrives at the power of vanquishing them with ease and with facility. Thus he frequently be- comes wicked from habit. OP THE INTELLECT. because he has been unwilling to re- cur back to the source from whence they sprung, which has, as it were, identified itself with his brain. How- ever this may be. he adheres with great strength of attachment to all those things to which he is habituated ; his mind experiences a sort of violence, or incommodious revulsion, when it is endeavoured to make him change the course of his ideas : a fatal predilection frequently conducts him back to the old track in despite of reason. It is by a pure mechanism that may be explained the phenomena of habit, as well physical as moral ; the isoul, notwithstanding its pretended spiritu- ality, is modified exactly in the same manner as the body. Habit, in man, causes the organs of voice to learnthe mode of expressing quickly the ideas consigned to his brain, by means of certain motion, which, during his in- fancy, the tongue acquires the power of executing with facility : his tongue, once habituated to move itself in a cer- tain manner, finds much trouble to move itself after another mode ; the throat yields with difficulty to those inflections which are exacted by a language different from that to which he has been accustomed. It is the same with his ideas ; his brain, his interior organ, his soul, inured to a given man- ner of modification, accustomed to at- tach certain ideas to certain objects, long used to form to itself a system connected with certain opinions, wheth- er true or false, experiences a painful sensation whenever he undertakes to give it a new impulse, or alter the di- rection of its habitual motion. It is nearly as difficult to make him change his opinions as his language.* Here then, without doubt, is the cause of that almost invincible attach- ment which man displays to those customs, those prejudices, those insti- tutions of which it is in vain that rea- son, experience, good sense, prove to him the inutility, or even the danger. * Hobbes says that, " It is the nature of all corporeal beings, who have been frequently moved in the same manner, to continually re- ceive a greater aptitude, or to produce the same motions with more facility." It is this which constitutes habit as well in morals as in physics. V. Hobbes's Essay on Human Nature. Habit opposes itself to the clearest de- monstrations ; these can avail nothing against those passions and those vices which time has rooted in him against the most ridiculous systems against the strangest customs especially when he has learned to attach to them the ideas of utility of common interest of the welfare of society. Such is the source of that obstinacy which man evinces for his religion for ancient usages for unreasonable customs for laws, so little accordant with justice for abuses, which so frequently make him suffer for prejudices of which he sometimes acknowledges the absurdity, although unwilling to divest himself of them. Here is the reason why na- tions contemplate the most useful novelties as mischievous innovations, and believe they would be lost if they were to remedy those evils which they have leatned to consider as necessary to their repose, and which they have been taught to/ consider dangerous to be cured.* fjLc* 1 * Education,** the onlv art of making man contract in early life, that is to say, when his organs are extremely flexible, the habits, the opinions, and the modes of existence adopted by the society in which he is placed. The first moments of his infancy are em- ployed in collecting experience ; those who are charged with the care of bring- ing him up, teach him how to apply it: it is they who develop reason in him : the first impulse they give him com- monly decides of his condition, his passions, the ideas he forms to himself of happiness, and the means he shall employ to procure it of his virtues and his vices. Under the eyes of his masters, the infant acquires ideas, and learns to associate them to think in a certain manner to judge well or ill. They point out to him various objects, which they accustom him either to love or to hate, to desire or to avoid, to esteem or to despise. It is thus opinions are transmitted from fathers, from mothers, from nurses, and from masters, to man in his infan- tile state. It is thus that his mind by * Assiduitate quotidiana et consuetudine oculorum assuescunt animi, neque admiran- tur, neque requirunt rationes earum rerum quas vident. Cicero de Xatur : Deorum Lib. ii. Cap. 2. OF GOVERNMENT. C9 degrees saturates itself with truth, or fills itself with errour, and as either of them regulates his conduct, it renders him either happy or miserable, virtuous or vicious, estimable or hateful. It is thus he becomes either contented or discontented with his destiny, accord- ing to the objects towards which they have directed his passions, and bent the energies of his mind ; that is to say, in which they have shown him his in- terest, or taught him to place his felici- ty : in consequence he loves and seeks after that which they have instructed him to revere, which they have made the object of his research : he has those tastes, those inclinations, those phan- tasms, which, during the whole course of his life, he is forward to indulge, which he is eager to satisfy, in propor- tion to the activity they have excited in him, and the capacity with which he has been provided by nature. Politics ought to be the art of regu- lating the passions of man, and of di- recting them to the welfare of society ; but too frequently it is nothing more than the detestable art of arming the passions of the various members of society against each other, to accom- plish their mutual destruction, and fill with rancorous animosities that associ- ation, from which, if properly manag- ed, man ought to derive his felicity. Society is commonly so vicious be- cause it is not founded upon nature upon experience, upon general utility but on the contrary, upon the passions the caprices, the particular interests of those by whom it is governed. Politics, to be useful, should founc its principles upon nature; that is to say, should conform itself to the es sence of man, and to the great end of so cicty : and society being a whole, form ed by the union of a great number o: families or individuals, assembled fron a reciprocity of interest in order tha they may satisfy with greater facility their reciprocal wants, and procure th advantages they desire ; that they ma^ obtain mutual succours; above al. that they may gain the faculty of en joying in security those benefits wit which nature and industry may furnis them ; it follows, of course, that pol tics, destined to maintain society ought to enter into its views, facilitat the means of giving them efficiency nd remove all those obstacles that ave a tendency to counteract the in- ntion with which man entered into ssociation. Man in approximating to his fellow nan to live with him in society, has lade, either formally or tacitly, a ovenant, by which he engages to ender mutual services, and to do noth- ng that can be prejudicial .to his neigh- our. But as the nature of each indi- idual impels him constantly to seek .fter his own welfare, which he has mistaken to consist in the gratification }f his passions, in the indulgence of lis transitory caprices, without any re- gard to the convenience of his fellows ; 'here needed a power to conduct him )ack to his duty, to oblige him to con- form himself to his obligations, and to ecall him to engagements which the mrry of his passions frequently make lim forget. This power is the law; t is the collection of the will of society, reunited to fix the conduct of its mem- )ers, and to direct their action in such a mode that it may concur to the great :nd of his association. But as society, rribre especially when very numerous, cannot assemble itself unless with great difficulty, and without tumult make known its intentions, it is obliged to choose citizens in whom it places confidence ; whom it makes the interpreter of its will ; whom it consti- tutes the depositaries of the power requisite to carry it into execution. Such is the origin of all government, which to be legitimate can only be founded on the free consent of society without which it is violence, usurpation, robbery. Those who are charged with the care of governing, call themselves sovereigns, chiefs, legislators, and, according to the form which society has been willing to give to its govern- ment, these sovereigns are styled mon- archs, magistrates, representative*, &c. Government only borrows its power from society : being established for no other purpose than its welfare, it is evident society can revoke this power whenever its interest shall exact it change the form of its government- extend or limit the power which it has confided to its chiefs, over whom, by the immutable laws of nature, it al- ways conserves a supreme authority; because these laws enjoin, that the part 70 OF GOVERNMENT. shall ahvays remain subordinate to the whole. Thus sovereigns are the ministers of society its interpreters the deposita- ries of a greater or of a less portion of its power, but they are not its absolute masters, neither are they the proprietors of nations. By a covenant, either ex- pressed or implied, they engage them- selves to watch over the maintenance, and to occupy themselves with the welfare, of society ; it is only upon these conditions that society consents to obey them. The price of obedience is protection.* No society upon earth was ever willing or competent to confer irrevocably upon its chiefs the right of doing it injury. Such a compact would be annulled by nature ; because she wills that each society, the same as each individual of the human species, shall tend to its ow r n conservation ; it has not, therefore, the capacity to con- sent to its permanent misery. Laws, in order that they may be just, ought invariably to have for their end the general interest of society ; that is to say, to assure to the greater number of citizens those advantages for which man originally associated. These ad- vantages are, liberty, property, secu- rity. Liberty, to man, is the faculty of doing, for his own peculiar happiness, every thing which does not injure or diminish the happiness of his associates : in associating, each individual renounc- ed the exercise of that portion of his natural liberty, which would be able to prejudice or injure the liberty of his fellows. The exercise of that liberty which is injurious to society is called licentiousness. Property is the faculty of enjoying those advantages which spring from labour those benefits which industry or talent has procured to each member of society. Security is the certitude that each individual ought to have, of enjoying in his person and his property, the protection of the laws, as long as he shall faithfully perform his engagements \vith society. Justice assures to all the members of society, * There oufht to be reciprocity of interest between the governed and the governor : when- ever this reciprocity is wanting, society is in that state of confusion, spoken of in the fifth chapter, it is verging on destruction. the possession of those advantages or rights which belong to them. From this it will appear, that, without justice, society is not in a condition to procure the happiness of any man. Justice is also called equity, because, by the assistance of the laws, made to com- mand the whole, she reduces all its members to a state of equality ; that is to say, she prevents them from prevail- ing one over the other by the inequality which nature -or industry may hare made between their respective powers. Rights are every thing which society, by equitable laws, permits each indi- vidual to do for his own peculiar felicity. These rights are evidently limited by the invariable end of all association ; society has, on its part, rights over all its members, by virtue of the advantages w r hich it procures for them ; all its mem- bers, in turn, have a right to claim from society, or secure from its ministers, those advantages for the procuring cf which they congregated, and renounced a portion of their natural liberty. A society of which the chiefs, aided by the laws, do not procure any good for its members, evidently loses its right over them : those chiefs who injure society, lose the right of commanding. It is not our country without it secure? the welfare of its inhabitants ; a society without equity contains only enemies ; a society oppressed is composed only of tyrants and slaves; slaves are in- capable of being citizens ; it is liberty property security, that render our country dear to us; and it is the tru3 love of his country that forms the citizen. f For want of having a proper know- ledge of these truths, or for want of applying them when known, some na- tions have become unhappy have con-, tained nothing but a vile heap of slaves, separated from each other, and detached from society, which neither procures for them any good, nor secures to them any one advantage. In consequence of the imprudence of some nations, or of the craft, the cunning, the violence of those to whom they have confided the power of making laws, and of carrying them into execution, their sovereigns have rendered themselves absolute masters t An ancient poet has justly said, Sereonm nulla est unquam civitas. OF GOVERNMENT. 71 if society. These, mistaking the true source of their power, pretended to hold it from heaven; to be accountable for their actions to God alone ; to owe nothing to society, in a word, to be Gods upon earth, and to possess the right of governing arbitrarily, as the God or Gods above. From thence politics became corrupted, they were only a mockery. Such nations, dis- graced and groAvn contemptible, did not dare resist the will of their chiefs tleir laws were nothing more than the expression of the caprice of these chiefs ; public welfare was sacrificed to their peculiar interests the force of society was turned against itself its members withdrew to attach themselves to its oppressors, to its tyrants ; these, to seduce them, permitted them to injure it with impunity, to profit by its mis- fortunes. Thus liberty, justice, security, virtue, were banished from many na- tions politics was no longer any thing more than the art of availing itself of the forces of a people, of the treasure of society, of dividing it on the subject of its interest, in order to subjugate it by itself: at length a stupid and me- chanical habit made them love their chains. Man, when he has nothing to fear, presently becomes wicked ; he who believes he has not occasion for his fellow, persuades himself he may fol- low the inclinations of his heart, with- out caution or discretion. Thus, fear is the only obstacle society can effectu- ally oppose to the passions of its chiefs: without it they will quickly become corrupt, and will not scruple to avail themselves of the means society has placed in their hands to make them accomplices in their iniquity. To pre- vent these abuses it is requisite society should set bounds to its confidence should limit the power which it dele- gates to its chiefs; should reserve to itself a sufficient portion of authority to prevent them from injuring it ; i must establish prudent checks ; .it mus cautiously divide the powers it confers because united it will be infallibly oppressed. The slightest reflection wil make men feel, that the burden o' governing is too ponderous to be born by an. individual that the scope an the multiplicity of his duties mus always render him negligent that th xtent of his power has ever a tendency render him mischievous. In short, .3 experience of all ages will convince ations that man is continually tempted o the abuse of power: that therefore le sovereign ought to be subject to the aw, not the law to the sovereign. Government has necessarily an equal nfluence over the philosophy as over ic morals of nations. In the same nanner that its care produces labour, ctivity, abundance, salubrity, justice, nd its negligence induces idleness, loth, discouragement, penury, conta- ion, injustice, vices and crimes. It epends upon government either to oster industry, mature genius, give a pring to talents, or to stifle them, ndeed, government, the distributer of dignities, of riches, of rewards, of pun- shments the master of those objects n which man from his infancy has earned to place his felicity acquires a necessary influence over his conduct; t kindles his passions ; gives them direction; makes him instrumental to vhatever purpose it pleases: it modifies lim ; determines his manners ; which n a whole people, as in the individual, s nothing more than the conduct, or he general system of wills and of actions that necessarily result from his education, his government, his laws, lis religious opinions, his institutions, whether rational or irrational. In short, manners are the habits of a people : these are good whenever society draws Tom them true and solid happiness ; they are detestable in the eye of reason, when the happiness of society does not spring from them, and when they have nothing more in their favour than the suffrage of time, or the countenance of prejudice, which rarely consults expe- rience and good sense. If experience be consulted, it will be found there is no action, however abominable, that has not received the applause of some people. Parricide the sacrifice of children- robbery usurpation cruel- ty intolerance prostitution, have all in their turn been licensed actions, and have been deemed laudable and meritorious deeds with some nations of the earth. Above all, Religion has consecrated the most unreasonable, the most revolting customs. Man's passions depending on the motion of attraction and of repulsiou 72 OF GOVERNMENT. of which he is rendered susceptible by nature, who enables him, by his pecu- liar essence, to be attracted by those objects which appear useful to him, to be repelled by those which he considers prejudicial ; it follows that government, by holding the magnet, has the power either of restraining them, or of giving them a favourable or an unfavourable direction. All his passions are con- stantly limited by either loving or hating seeking or avoiding desiring or fearing. These passions, so neces- sary to the conservation of man, are a consequence of his organization, and display themselves with more or less energy, according to his temperament: education and habit develop them, and government conducts them towards those objects which it believes itself interested in making desirable to its subjects. The various names which have been given to these passions are relative to the different objects by which they are excited, such as pleasure grandeur riches, which produce volup- tuousness ambition vanity avarice. If the source of those passions which predominate in nations be attentively examined, it will be commonly found ia their governments. It is the impulse received from their chiefs that renders them sometimes warlike sometimes superstitious sometimes aspiring after glory sometimes greedy after wealth sometimes rational sometimes unrea- sonable. If sovereigns, in order to enlighten and to render happy their dominions, were to employ only the tenth part of the vast expenditures which they lavish, and only a tithe of the pains which they employ to stupify them to deceive them to afflict them, their subjects would presently be as wise and as happy, as they are now remarkable for being blind, ignorant, and miserable. Let the vain project of destroying passions from the heart of man be abandoned; let an effort be made to direct them towards objects that may be useful to himself and to his associates. Let education, let government, let the laws, habituate him to restrain his pas- sions within those just bounds which experience and reason prescribe. Let the ambitious have honours, titles, dis- tinctions, power, when they shall have usefully served their country; let riches be given to those who covet them, when they shall have rendered themselves necessary to their fellow citizens; let eulogies encourage those who shall be. actuated by the love of glory. In short, let the passions of man have a free course, whenever there shall result from their exercise real and durable advan- tages to society. Let education kindle only those which are truly beneficial to the human species ; let it favour those alone which are really necessary to the maintenance of society. The passions of man are dangerous, only because every thing conspires to give them an evil direction. Nature does not make man either good or wicked ;* she combines ma- chines more or less active, mobile, and energetic; she furnishes him with or- gans, with temperament, of which his passions, more or less impetuous, are the necessary consequence; these pas- sions have always his happiness for their object ; therefore they are legiti- mate and natural, and they can only be called bad or good, relatively to the influence they have on the beings of his species. Nature gives man legs proper to sustain his weight, necessary to transport him from one place to another ; the care of those who rear them, strengthens them ; habituates him to avail himself of them ; accustoms him to make either a good or a bad use of them. The arm which he has re- ceived from nature is neither good nor bad ; it is necessary to a great number of the actions of life ; nevertheless the use of this arm becomes criminal if he has contracted the habit of using it to rob or to assassinate, with a view to obtain that money which he has been taught from his infancy to desire ; which the society in which he lives renders necessary to him. but which his industry will enable him to obtain without doing injury to his fellow man. The heart of man is a soil which nature has made equally suitable to the production of brambles or of useful grain of deleterious poison or of re- freshing fruit, by virtue of the seeds which may he sown in it by the cul- tivation that may be bestowed upon it. In his infancy those objects are pointed * Seneca has said with great reason. Erraa si existimes vitia nobiscum nasoi; supervcne- runt, ingesta sum. V. Senec. Epiit. 91, 95, 124 OF GOVERNMENT. out to him which he is to estimate or to despise to seek after or to avoid to love or to hate. It is his parents ant his instructers who render him either virtuous or wicked wise or unreason- able studious-or dissipated steady or trifling solid or vain. Their example and their discourse modify him through his whole life, teaching him what are the things he ought either to desire or to avoid : he desires them in conse- quence ; and he imposes on himself the task of obtaining them according to the energy of his temperament, which ever decides the force of his passions. It is thus that education, by inspiring him with opinions and ideas either true or false, gives him those primitive im- pulsions after which he acts in a man- ner either advantageous or prejudicial, both to himself and to others. Man, at his birth, brings with him into the world nothing but the necessity of con- serving himself and of rendering his existence happy : instruction, example, the customs of the world, present him with the means, either real or imagi- nary, of achieving it: habit procures for him the facility of employing these means ; and he attaches himself strongly to those he judges best calculated to secure to him the possession of those objects which he has learned to desire as the preferable good attached to his existence. Whenever his education, whenever the examples which have been afforded him, whenever the means with which he has been provided, are approved by reason, are the result of experience, every thing concurs to ren- der him virtuous: habit strengthens these dispositions in him; and he be- comes, in consequence, a useful mem- ber of society, to the interests of which every thing ought tn prove to him that his own permanent well-being is neces- sarily allied. If, on the contrary, his education his institutions the exam- ples which are set before him the opinions which are suggested to him in his infancy, are of a nature to exhibit to his mind virtue as useless and repug- nant, and vice as useful and congenial to his own individual happiness, he will become vicious ; he will believe him- self interested in injuring society ; he will be carried along by the general current : he will renounce virtue, which to him will no longer be any tiling more No. III. 10 73 than a vain idol, without attractions to induce him to follow it; without charms to tempt his adoration, because it will appear to exact that he should immolate at its shrine all those objects which he has been constantly taught to consider the most dear to himself and as benefits the most desirable. In order that man may become vir- tuous, it is absolutely requisite that he should have an interest or should find advantages in practising virtue. For this end, it is necessary that education should implant in him reasonable ideas ; that public opinion should lean towards virtue as the most desirable good ; that example should point it out as the object most worthy esteem ; that government should faithfully reward it ; that honour should always accompany its practice; that vice and crime should invariably be despised and punished. Is virtue in this situation amongst men ? Does the education of man infuse into him just ideas of happiness; true notions of virtue ; dispositions really favourable to the beings with whom he is to live ? The examples spread before him, are they suitable to innocence of manners? are they calculated to make him respect decency to cause him to love probity to practise honesty to value good faith to esteem equity to revere conjugal fidelity to observe exactitude in ful- filling his duties? Religion, which alone pretends to regulate his manners, does it render him sociable does it make him pacific does it teach him to be humane ? The arbiters of society, are they faithful in rewarding those who have best served their country, in punishing those who have plundered, divided, and ruined it?. Justice, does she hold her scales with an even hand Between all the citizens of the state? The laws, do they never support the strong against the weak ; favour the rich against the poor; uphold the happy against the miserable ? In short, is it an uncommon spectacle to behold crime frequently justified, or crowned with success, insolently triumphing over that merit which it disdains, over that virtue which it outrages ? Well, then, in societies thus constituted, virtue can only be heard by a very small number of peaceable citizens, who know how o estimate its value, and who enjoy it n secret. For the others, it is only a 74 OF GOVERNMENT. ess, and perhaps unjust, a man should be virtu- disgusting object, as they see in it nothing out the supposed enemy to their happiness, or the censor of their individual conduct. If man, according to his nature, is necessitated to desire his welfare, he is equally obliged to cherish the means by which he believes it is to be acquired : it would be usele to demand that ous, if he could not be so without ren- dering himself miserable. Whenever he thinks vice renders him happy, he must necessarily love vice ; whenever he sees inutility or crime rewarded and honoured, what interest will he find in occupying himself with the happiness of his fellow creatures, or in restraining the fury of his passions ? In fine, when- ever his mind is saturated with false ideas and dangerous opinions, it follows of course that his whole conduct will become nothing more than a long chain of errours, a series of depraved actions. We are informed, that the savages, in order to flatten the heads of their children, squeeze them between two boards, by that means preventing them from taking the shape designed for them by nature. It is pretty nearly the same thing with the institutions of man ; they commonly conspire to coun- teract nature to constrain to divert to extinguish the impulse nature has given him, to substitute others which are the source of all his misfortunes. In almost all the countries of the earth man is bereft of truth, is fed with false- hoods, is amused with marvellous chi- meras : he is treated like those children whose members are, by the imprudent care of their nurses, swathed with little fillets, bound up with rollers, which deprive them of the free use of their limbs, obstruct their growth, prevent their activity, and oppose themselves to their health. Most of the religious opinions of man have for their object only to display to him his supreme felicity in those illu- sions for which they kindle his passions : but as the phantoms which are present- ed to his imagination are incapable of being considered in the same light by all who contemplate them, he is perpetually in dispute concerning these objects ; he hates and persecutes his neighbour well ; that in committing the greatest crimes to sustain his opinions he is act- ing risfht. It is thus religion infatuates man from his infancy, fills him with vanity and fanaticism: if he has a heated imagination it drives him on to fury ; if he has activity, it makes him a madman, who is frequently as cruel to himself, as he is dangerous and in- commodious to others : if, on the con- trary, he be phlegmatic or of a slothful habit, he becomes melancholy and is useless to society. Public opinion every instant offers to man's contemplation false ideas of ho nour and wrong notions of glory : it attaches his esteem not only to frivo- lous advantages, but also to prejudicial and injurious actions, which example authorizes which prejudice conse- crates which habit precludes him from viewing with disgust, from eying with the horrour they merit. Indeed, habit familiarizes his mind with the most absurd ideas with the most unreason- able customs with the most blame- able actions with prejudices the most contrary to his own interests, the most detrimental to the society in which he lives. He finds nothing strange, noth- ing singular, nothing despicable, noth- ing ridiculous, except those opinions and those objects to which he is him- self unaccustomed. There are coun- tries in which the most laudable actions appear very blameable and extremely ridiculous, and where the foulest, the most diabolical actions, pass for very honest and perfectly rational.* Aullwrity commonly believes itself interested in maintaining the received opinions ; those prejudices and those errours which it considers requisite to the maintenance of its power, are sus- tained by force, which is never ration- i i i - . i ins wne 10 me emorumas tn me ainuiKe his neighbour in turn persecutes him refusal to accept thiaj elidts hlg ^- he believes in doing this he is doing | f ort h his resentment. * In some nations they kill the old men ; in some the children strangle their fathers. The Phenicians and the Cartnagenians immolated their children to their Gods. Europeans ap- prove duels ; and those who refuse to blow out the brains of another are contemplated by them as dishonoured. The Spaniards, the Portuguese, think it meritorious to burn a heretic. Christians deem it right to cut the throats of those who differ from them in opi- nion. In some countries women prostitute themselves without dishonour ; in others it is the height of hospitality for man to present his wife to the embraces of the stranger : the calls OF THE SOUL. al. Princes filled with deceptive im- ages of happiness ; with mistaken no- tions of power ; with erroneous opin- ions of grandeur ; with false ideas of glory, are surrounded with flattering courtiers, who are interested in keeping up the delusion of their masters : these contemptible men have acquired ideas of virtue only that they may outrage it : by degrees they corrupt the people, these become depraved, lend them- selves to their debaucheries, pander to the vices of the great, then make a merit of imitating them in their irregu- larities. /X court is the true focus of the corruption of a people. ~"\ This is the true source ofrooral evil. It is thus that every thing conspires to render man vicious, to give a fatal im- pulse to his soul ; from whence results the general confusion of society, which becomes unhappy 'from the misery of almost every one of its members. The strongest motive-powers are put in ac- tion to inspire man with a passion fcr futile or indifferent objects, which make him become dangerous to his fellow man by the means which he is compelled to employ in order to obtain them. Those who have the charge of guiding his steps, either impostors themselves, or the dupes to their own prejudices, forbid him to hearken to reason ; they make truth appear dan- gerous to him, and exhibit errour as re- quisite to his welfare, not only in this world but in the next. In short, habit strongly attaches him to his irrational opinions 'to his perilous inclinations to his blind passion for objects either useless or dangerous. Here then is the reason why for the most part man finds himself necessarily determined to evil; the reason why the passions, inherent in his nature and necessary to his con- servation, become the instruments of his destruction, the bane of that society which they ought to preserve. Here, then, the reason why society becomes a state of warfare, and why it does nothing but assemble enemies, who are envious of each other and always rivals for the prize. If some virtuous beings are to be found in these societies, they must be sought for in the very small number of those, who, bom with a phlegmatic temperament, have moder- ate passions, who therefore either do not desire at all, or desire very feebly, those objects with which their associ ates are continually inebriated. Man's nature diversely cultivated, decides upon his faculties, as well cor- poreal as intellectual upon his quali- ties, as well moral as physical. The man who is of a sanguine, robust con- stitution, must necessarily have strong passions : he who is of a bilious, me- lancholy habit, will as necessarily have fantastical and gloomy passions : the man of a gay turn, of a sprightly ima- gination, will have cheerful passions ; while the man, in whom phlegm abounds, will have those which are gentle, or which have a very slight de- gree of violence. It appears to be upon the equilibrium of the humours that de- pends the state of the man who is call- ed virtuous : his temperament seems to be the result of a combination, in which the elements or principles are balanced with such precision, that no one passion predominates over another, or carries into his machine more dis- order than its neighbour. Habit, as we have seen, is man's nature modifi- ed : this latter furnishes the matter ; education, domestic example, national manners, give it the form : these acting on his temperament, make him either reasonable or irrational, enlightened or stupid, a fanatic or a hero, an enthu- thiast for the public good, or an un- bridled criminal, a wise man smitten with the advantages of virtue or a liber- tine plunged into every kind of vice. All the varieties of the moral man de- pend on the diversity of his ideas, which are themselves arranged and combined in his brain by the interven- tion of his senses. His temperament is the produce of physical substances ; his habits are the effect of physical mo- difications ; the opinions, whether good or bad, injurious or beneficial, true or false, which form themselves in his mind, are never more than the effect of those physical impulsions which the brain receives by the medium of the senses. CHAPTER X. The Soul does not derive Us Ideas from itself. It has no innate Ideas. WFIAT has preceded suffices to prove that the interior organ of man, which 76 OF THE SOUL. is called his soul, is purely material. He will be enabled to convince him- self of this truth, by the manner in which he acquires his ideas ; from those impressions, which material objects successively make on his organs, which are themselves acknowledged to be material. It has been seen that the fa- culties which are called intellectual, are to be ascribed to that of feeling ; the different qualities of those faculties, which are called moral, have been ex- plained after the necessary laws of a very simple mechanism : it now re- mains to reply to those who still ob- stinately persist in making the soul a substance distinguished from the body, or who insist on giving it an essence totally distinct. They seem to found their distinction upon this, that this interior organ has the facultv of drawing its ideas from within itself; they will have it that man, at his birth, brings with him ideas into the world, which according to this wonderful no- tion, they have called innate.* They have believed, then, that the soul, by a special privilege, in a nature where every thing is connected, enjoyed the faculty of moving itself without receiv- ing any impulse ; of creating to itself ideas, of thinking on a subject, without being determined to such action by any exterior object, which, by moving its organs, should furnish it with an image of the subject of its thoughts. In con- sequence of these gratuitous supposi- tions, which it is only requisite to ex- pose in order to confute, some very able speculators, who were prepossessed by their superstitious prejudices, have ventured the length to assert, that, without model, without prototype, to act on the senses, the soul is competent * Some ancient philosophers have held, that the soul originally contains the principles of several notions or doctrines: the Stoics de- signated this by the term T[ft\r,^K, anticipa- ted opinions ; the Greek mathematicians Kwv*? Evv ;!*.;, unircrsal ideas. The Jews have a similar doctrine which they borrowed from the Chaldeans; their Rabbins taught that each soul, before it was united to the seed that must form an infant in the womb of a woman, is confided to the care of an aiiL'cl, whi'-h CMUS-JS him to behold heaven, earth, and hell : this, they pretend, is done by the assistance of a lamp which extinguishes itself, as soon as the infant comes into the world. See Gaubnin. De vita et morte to delineate to itself the whole uni- verse, with all the beings it contains. Descartes and his disciples have as- sured us, that the body went absolutely for nothing in the sensations or ideas of the soul ; that it can feel that it can perceive, understand, taste, and touch, even when there should exist nothing that is corporeal or material exterior to ourselves. But what shall be said of a Berke- ley, who has endeavoured in prove to man, that every thing in this world is nothing more than a chimerical illu- sion, and that the universe exists no- where but in himself: that it has no identity but in his imagination ; who has rendered the existence of all things problematical by the aid of sophisms, insolvable even to those who maintain the doctrine of the spirituality of the soul.f To justify such monstrous opinions, they assert that ideas are only the ob- jects of thought. But according to the last analysis, these ideas can only reach man from exterior objects, which in giving impulse to his senses, modify his brain ; or from the material beings contained within the interior of his machine, who make some parts of his body experience those sensations which he perceives, and which furnish him with ideas, which he relates, faithfully or otherwise, to the cause that moves him. Each idea is an effect, but how- ever difficult it may be to recur to the cause, can we possibly suppose it is not ascribable to a cause? If we can only form ideas of material substances, * t Extravagant as this doctrine of the bishop of Cloyne may appear, it cannot well be more BO than that of Malebranche, the champion of innate ideas, who makes the divinity the common bond between the soul and thebodv : or than that of those metaphysicians who maintain, that the soul is a substance hetero- geneous to the body, and, who, by ascribing to this soul the thoughts of man, have, in fact, rendered the body snperfluous. They have not perceived, they were liable to one solid objection, which is, that if the ideas of man are innate, if he derives them from a superior being, independent of exterior causes, if he sees every thing in God ; how comes it that so many false ideas are afloat, that so many errours prevail with which the human mind is saturated ? From whence come those opin- ions which, according to the theologians, are BO displeasing to God? Might it not be a question to the Malebranchists, was it in the Divinity that Spinosa beheld his system 1 OP THE SOUL. 77 how can we suppose the cause of our ideas can possibly be immaterial ? To pretend that man, without the aid of exterior objects, without the interven- tion of his senses, is competent to form ideas of the universe, is to assert, that a blind man is in a capacity to form a true idea of a picture that represents some fact of which he has never heard any one speak. It is very easy to perceive the source of those errours into which men, other- wise extremely profound and very en- lightened, have fallen, when they have been desirous to speak of the soul and of its operations. Obliged, either by their own prejudices, or by the fear of combating the opinions of an imperi- ous theology, they have become the advocates of the principle ? that the soul was a pure spirit, an immaterial substance, of an essence directly dif- ferent from that of the body, or from every thing we behold : this granted, they have been incompetent to conceive how material objects could operate, or in what manner gross and corporeal organs were enabled to act on a sub- stance that had no kind of analogy with them, and how they were in a capacity to modify it by conveying it ideas ; in the impossibility of explaining this phe- nomenon, at the same time perceiving that the soul had ideas, they concluded that it must draw them from itself, and not from those beings, which- accord- ing to their own hypothesis, were in- capable of acting on it ; they therefore imagined that all the modifications of this soul, sprung from its own peculiar energy, were imprinted on it from its first formation by the author of nature an immaterial being like itself; and that these did not in any manner de- pend upon the beings of which we have a knowledge, or which act upon it by the gross means of our senses. There are, however, some phenom- ena which, considered superficially, appear to support the opinion of these philosophers, and to announce a facul- ty in the human soul of producing ideas within itself, without any exterior aid ; these are dreams, in which the interior organ of man, deprived of objects that move it visibly, does not, however, cease to have ideas, to be set in ac- tivity, and to be modified in a manner that is sufficiently sensible to have an influence uponJiis body. But if a little reflection be called in, the solution to this difficulty will be found : it will be perceived, that, even during sleep, his brain is supplied with a multitude of ideas, with which the eve or time be- fore has stocked it ; these ideas were communicated to it by exterior and cor poreal objects, by which it has been modified : it will be found that these modifications renew themselves, not by any spontaneous or voluntary motion on its part, but by a chain of involun- tary movements which take place in his" machine, which determine or ex- cite those that give play to the brain ; these modifications renew themselves with more or less fidelity, with a great- er or lesser degree of conformity to those which it has anteriorly experi- enced. Sometimes in dreaming he has memory, then he retraces to himself the objects which have struck him faithfully; at other times, these modi- fications renew themselves without order, without connexion, or very dif- ferently from those which real objects have before excited in his interior organ. If in a dream he believe he sees a friend, his brain renews in itself the modifications or the ideas which this friend had formerly excited, in the same order that they arranged them- selves when his eyes really beheld him ; this is nothing more than an ef- fect of memory. If, in his dream, he fancy he sees a monster which has no model in nature, his brain is then mo- dified in the same manner that it was by the particular or detached ideas with which it then does nothing more than compose an ideal whole, by assembling and associating, in a ridiculous man ner, the scattered ideas that were con- signed to its keeping; it is then, that in dreaming he has imagination. Those dreams that are troublesome, extravagant, whimsical, or unconnect- ed, are commonly the effect of some confusion in his machine; such as painful indigestion, an overheated blood, a prejudicial fermentation, &c. these material causes excite in his body a disoiderly motion, which pre- cludes the brain from being modified in the same manner it was on the day before ; in consequence of this irregu- lar motion, the brain is disturbed, it only represents to itself confused ideas 73 THE SOUL. that want connexion. v When in a dream he believes he sees a sphinx,* either he has seen the representation of one when he was awake, or else the disorderly motion of the brain is such, that it causes it to combine ideas, to connect parts, from which there results a whole without model, of which the parts were not formed to be united. It is thus, that his brain combines the head of a woman, of which it already has the idea, with the body of a lioness, of which it also has the image. In this his head acts in the same manner as when, by any defect in the interior or- gan, his disordered imagination paints to him some objects, notwithstanding he is awake. He frequently dreams without being asleep : his dreams never produce any thing so strange but that they have some resemblance with the objects which have anteriorly acted on his senses, or have already communi- cated ideas to his brain. The crafty theologians have composed at their leisure, and in their waking hours, those phantoms of which they avail them- selves to terrify man ; they have done ^nothing more than assemble the scat- tered traits which they have found in the most terrible beings of their own species ; by exaggerating the powers and the rights claimed by tyrants, they have formed Gods before whom man trembles. Thus it is seen that dreams, far from proving that the soul acts by its own peculiar energy, or draws its ideas from its own recesses, prove, on the contrary, that in sleep it is entirely passive, that it does not even renew its modifica- tions, but according to the involuntary confusion, which physical causes pro- duce in the body, of which every thing tends to show the identity and the con- substantiality with the soul. What appears to have led those into a mis- take, who maintained that the soul drew its ideas from itself, is this, they have contemplated these ideas as if they were real being?, when, in point of fact, they are nothing more than the modifications produced in the brain of man by objects to which this brain is * A being supposed by the poets to have a head and face like a woman, a body like a dog, wings like a bird, and claws like a liorwj who put fortli riddles and killed those who^ could not expound them. a stranger; they are these objects, wno are the true models or archetypes to which it is necessary to recur : here is the source of their errours. In the individual who dreams, the soul does not act more from itself than it does in the man who is drunk, that is to say, who is modified by some spirituous liquor; or than it does in the sick man when he is delirious, that is to say, when he is modified by those physical causes which disturb his ma- chine in the performance of its func- tions ; or than it does in him whose brain is disordered : dreams, like these various states, announce nothing more than a physical confusion in the human machine, under the influence of which the brain ceases to act after a precise and regular manner : this disorder may be traced to physical causes, such as the aliments, the humours, the combina- tions, the fermentations, which are but little analogous to the salutary state of man; from which it will appear, that his brain is necessarily confused when- ever his body is agitated in an extra- ordinary manner. Do not let him, therefore, believe that his soul acts by itself, or without a cause, in any one moment of his exist- ence; it is, conjointly with the body, submitted to the impulse of beings who act on him necessarily, and according to their various properties. Wine, taken in too great a quantity, necessarily dis- turbs his ideas, causes confusion in his corporeal functions, occasions disorder in his mental faculties. If there really existed a being in nature with the capability of moving itself by its own peculiar energies, that is to say, able to produce motion inde- pendent of all other causes, such a being would have the power of arrest ing itself, or of suspending the motion of the universe, which is nothing more than an immense chain of causes linked one to the other, acting and reacting by necessary and by immutable laws, which cannot be changed or suspended, unless the essences of every thing in it were changed nay, annihilated. In the general system of the world, nothing more can be perceived than a long series of motion, received and communicated in succession by beings capacitated to give impulse to each other: it is thus that each body is moved, by the collision OF THE SOUL. 7S of some other body. The invisible mo- tion of his soul is to be attributed to causes concealed within himself; he believes that it is moved by itself, because he does not see the springs which put it in motion, or tecause he conceives those motive-powers are in- capable of producing the effects he so much admires : but, does he more clearly conceive how a spark in ex- ploding gunpowder is capable of pro- ducing the terrible effects he witnesses? The source of his errours arises from this, that he regards his body as gross and inert, whilst this body is a sensible machine, which has necessarily an instantaneous conscience the moment it receives an impression, and which is conscious of its own existence by the recollection of impressions successively experienced ; memory, by resuscitating an impression anteriorly received, by detaining it, or by causing an impression which it receives to remain, whilst it associates it with another, then with a third, gives all the mechanism of reasoning. An idea, which is only an impercep- tible modification of the brain, gives play to the organ of speech, which dis- plays itself by the motion it excites in the tongue: this, in its turn, breeds ideas, thoughts, passions, in those beings who are provided with organs suscep- tible of receiving analogous motion ; in consequence of which, the wills of a great number of men are influenced, who, combining their efforts, produce a revolution in a state, or even have an influence over the entire globe. It is thus that an Alexander decided the late of Asia ; it is thus that a Mahomet changed the face of the earth ; it is thus that imperceptible causes produce the most terrible, the most extended effects, by a series of necessary motion im- printed on the brain of man. The difficulty of comprehending the effects produced on the soul of man, has made him attribute to it those incomprehensible qualities which have been examined. By the aid of imagina- tion, by the power of thought, this soul appears to quit his body, to transport itself with the utmost facility towards the most distant objects ; to run over and to approximate in the twinkling of an eye all the points of the universe : he has therefore believed that a being, who is susceptible of such rapid motion, must be of a nature very distinguished from all others ; he has persuaded him- self that this soul in reality does travel, that it actually springs over the immense space necessary to meet these various objects ; he did not perceive, that to do it in an instant, it had only to run over itself, and approximate the ideas con- signed to its keeping by means of the senses. Indeed, it is never by any other means than by his senses, that beings become known to man, or furnish him with ideas ; it is only in consequence of the impulse given to his body, that his brain is modified ; or that his soul thinks, wills, and acts. If, as Aristotle asserted more than two thousand years ago, " nothing enters the mind of inan^ but through the medium of his sensts ;" it follows as a consequence, that every thing that issues from it, must find some sensible object to which it can attach its ideas, whether immediately, as a man, a tree, a bird, &c., or in the last analysis or decomposition, such as pleasure, happi- ness, vice, virtue, &c.* Whenever, therefore, a word or its idea, does not connect itself with some sensible object, to which it can be related, this word, or this idea, is unmeaning, is void of sense: it were better for man that the idea was banished from his mind, struck out of his language. This principle is only the converse of the axiom of Aris- totle ; if the direct be evident, the inverse must be so likewise. How has it happened, that the pro- found Locke, who, to the great morti- fication of the metaphysicians, has placed this principle of Aristotle in the clearest point of view; how is it that all those who, like him, have recognised the absurdity of the system of innate ideas, have not drawn the immediate and necessary consequences ? How has it come to pass, that they have not had sufficient courage to apply so clear a principle to all those fanciful chimeras with which the human mind has for such a length of time been so vainly occupied ? Did they not perceive, that their principle sapped the very founda * This principle, so true, so luminous, so important in its consequence, has been set forth in all its lustre by a great number of philosophers; among the rest, by the grerj Locke. so OF THE SOUL. tions of that theology, which never occupies man but with those objects, of which, as they are inaccessible to his senses, he, consequently, can never form to himself any accurate idea ? But prejudice, particularly when it is held sacred, prevents him from seeing the most simple application of the most self-evident principles ; in religious mat- ters, the greatest men are frequently nothing more than children, who are incapable of either foreseeing or de- ducing the consequence of their own data. Locke, as well as all those who have adopted his system, which is so demon- strable, or the axiom of Aristotle, which is so clear, ought to have concluded from it, that all those wonderful things with which theologians have amused themselves, are mere chimeras ; that an immaterial spirit or substance, with- out extent, without parts, is nothing more than an absence of ideas ; in short, they ought to have felt, that the ineffable intelligence which they have supposed to preside at the helm of the world, is nothing more than a being of their own imagination, of which it is impossible his senses can ever prove either the existence or the qualities. For the same reason moral philoso- phers ought to have concluded, that what is called moral sentiment, moral instinct, that is, innate ideas of virtue, anterior to all experience of the good or bad effects resulting from its practice, are mere chimerical notions, which, like a great many others, have for their guarantee and base only theological speculation.* Before man can judge, he must feel; before he can distinguish good from evil, he must compare. To undeceive him with respect to innate ideas or modifications imprinted on his soul at the moment of his birth, it is simply requisite to recur to their source; he will then see, that those * Morals is a science of facts : to found it, therefore, on an hypothesis inaccessible to his censes, of which he has no means of proving the reality, is to render it uncer tain ; it is to cast the log of discord into his lap ; to cause him unceasingly to dispute upon that which he can never understand. To assert that the ideas of morals arc innate^ or the effect of instinct, is to pretend that man knows how to read before he has learned the letters of the alphabet ; that he is acquainted with the laws of society, before they are either made or promulgated. with which he is familiar, which have. as it were, identified themselves with his existence, have all come to him through the medium of some of 1m senses; that they are sometimes en- graven on his brain with great difficulty that they have never been permanent, and that they have perpetually varied in him : he will see that these pretended inherent ideas of his soul, are the effect of education, of example, above all. of habit, which, by reiterated motion, has taught his brain to associate his ideas, either in a confused or perspicuous manner; to familiarize itself with sys- tems, either rational or absurd. In short, he takes those for innate ideas, of which he has forgotten the origin ; he no longer recalls to himself either the precise epoch or the successive circumstances when these ideas Avere first consigned to his brain : arrived at a certain age, he believes he has always had the same notions ; his memory, crowded with experience and a multitude of facts, is no longer able to distinguish the particular circumstances which have contributed to give his brain its present modifications, its instantaneous mode of thinking, its actual opinions. For example, not one of his race recollects the first time the word God struck his ears, the first ideas that it formed in him, the first thoughts that it produced in him ; nevertheless, it is certain that from thence he has searched for some being with whom to connect the idra which he has either formed tohimselt, or which has been suggested to him : accustomed to hear God continually spoken of, he has, when in other respects most enlightened, regarded this idea as if it were infused into him by nature ; whilst it is clearly to be attributed to those delineations of it which his pa- rents or his instructers have made to him, and which he has afterwards modi fied according to his own particular organization, and the circumstances in which he has been placed: it is thus that each individual forms to himself a God of which he is himself the model, or which he modifies after his own fashion.f His ideas of morals, although more real than those of metaphysics, are not, however, innate: the moral sentiments he forms on the will, or the judgment t See Vol. II., Chapter iv. OP THE SOUL. 81 he passes on the actions of man, are founded on experience, which, alone, can enable him to discriminate those which are either useful or prejudicial, virtuous or vicious, honest or dishonest, worthy his esteem or deserving his cen- sure. His moral sentiments are the fruit of a multitude of experience, frequently very long and very complicated. He gathers it with time : it is more or less faithful, by reason of his particular organization, and the causes by which he is modified ; he ultimately applies this experience with greater or lesser facility, and on this depends his habit of judging. The celerity with which he applies his experience, when he judges of the moral actions of his fellow man, is what has been termed moral instinct. That which in natural philosophy is called instinct, is only the effect of some want of the body, the consequence of some attraction, or some repulsion, in man or animals. The child that is newly born, sucks for the first time: the nipple of the breast is put into his mouth : the natural analogy that is found between the conglomerate glands which line his mouth, and the milk which flows from the bosom of the nurse through the medium of the nipple, causes the child to press it with his mouth, in order to express the fluid appropriate to nourish his tender age ; from all this the infant gathers expe- rience ; by degrees the ideas of a nipple, of milk, of pleasure, associate them- selves in his brain, and every time he sees the nipple, he seizes it, promptly conveys it to his mouth, and applies it to the use for which it is designed. What has been said will enable us to judge of those prompt and sudden sentiments, which have been designated the force of blood. Those sentiments of love, which fathers and mothers have for their children; those feelings of affection, which children, with good inclinations, bear towards their parents, are by no means innate sentiments ; they are nothing more than the effect of experience, of reflection, of habit, in souls of sensibility. These sentiments do not even exist in a great number of human beings. We but too often wit- ness tyrannical parents, occupied with making enemies of their children, who appear to have been formed only to No. III. 11 be the victims of their irrational ca- prices. From the instant in which man com- mences, until that in which he ceases to exist, he feels, he is moved either agreeably or unpleasantly, he collects facts, he gathers experience, which pro- duce ideas in his brain that are either cheerful or gloomy. Not one individual has this experience present to his memo- ry at the same time, nor does it ever represent to him the whole clew at once: it is however this experience that me- chanically, and without his knowledge, directs him in all his actions ; it was to designate the rapidity with which he applied this experience, of which he so frequently loses the connexion, of which he is so often at a loss to render himself an account, that he imagined the word instinct : it appears to be the effect of a magical and supernatural power to the greater numbet of individuals; but it is a word devoid of sense to many others ; however, to the philosopher it is the effect of a very lively" feeling, which, to him, consists in the faculty of combining promptly a multitude of experiences and a long and numerous train of extremely complicated ideas. It is want that causes the inexplicable instinct we behold in animals, which have been denied souls without reason ; whilst they are susceptible of an infinity of actions that prove they think, they judge, have memory, are capable of experience, can combine ideas, can apply them with more or less facility to satisfy the wants engendered by their particular organization; in short, that prove they have passions, and that these are capable of being modified.* The embarrassments which animals have thrown in the way of the partisans of the doctrine of spirituality is well known : they have been fearful, if they allowed them to have a spiritual sou , of elevating them to the condition of human creatures ; on the other hand, 1n not allowing them to have a soul, they have furnished their adversaries with authority to deny it m like manner * Nothing but the height of folly can refus* intellectual faculties to animals; they feel, choose, deliberate, express love, show hatred in many instances their senses are much keener than those of man. Fish will return periodi- cally to the spot where it is the custom to throw them bread. OF THE SOUL. to man, who thus finds himself debased to the condition of the animal. Theo- logians have never known how to extri- cate themselves from this difficulty. Descartes fancied he solved it by say- ing that beasts have no souls, are mere machines. Nothing can be nearer the surface than the absurdity of this prin- ciple. Whoever contemplates nature without prejudice, will readily acknow- ledge, that there is no other difference between the man and the beast than that Avhich is to be attributed to the diversity of his organization. In some beings of the human species, who appear to be endowed with a greater sensibility of organs than others, may be seen an instinct, by the assistance of which they very promptly judge of the concealed dispositions of their fel- lows, simply by inspecting the linea- ments of their face. Those who are denominated physiognomists, are only men of very acute feelings, who have gathered an experience of which others, whether from the coarseness of their organs, from the little attention they have paid, or from some defect in their senses, are totally incapable : these last do not believe in the science of physi- ognomy, which appears to them per- fectly ideal. Nevertheless, it is certain that the action of this soul, which has been made spiritual, makes impressions that are extremely marked upon the exterior of the body ; these impressions continually reiterated, their image re- mains : thus, the habitual passions of man paint themselves on his counte- nance, by which the attentive observer, who is endowed with acute feeling, is enabled to judge with great rapidity of his mode of existence, and even to foresee his actions, his inclinations, his desires, his predominant passions, &c. Although the science of physiognomy appears chimerical to a great number of persons, yet there are few who have not a clear idea of a tender regard, of a cruel eye, of an austere aspect, of a false and dissimulating look, of an open countenance, &c. Keen and practised optics acquire, without doubt, the faculty of penetrating the concealed motion of the soul, by the visible traces it leaves upon features that it has continually modified. Above all, the eyes of man very quickly undergo changes, accord- ing to the motion which is excited in him : these delicate organs are visibly altered by the smallest shock com- municated to his brain. Serene eyes announce a tranquil soul ; wild eyes indicate a restless mind ; fiery eyes portray a choleric and sanguine tem- perament ; fickle or inconstant eyes give room to suspect a soul either alarmed or dissimulating. It is the study of this variety of shades that renders man practised and acute : upon the spot he combines a multitude of acquired experience, in order to form his judgment of the person he beholds. His judgment partakes in nothing of the supernatural or the wonderful : such a man is only distinguished by the fineness of his organs, and by the celerity with which his brain performs its functions. It is the same with some beings of the human species, in whom may be discovered an extraordinary sagacity, which to the uninformed appears Divine and miraculous.* Indeed, we see men who are capable of appreciating in the twinkling of an eye a multitude of cir- cumstances, and who have sometimes the faculty of foreseeing the most dis- tant events, yet this species of prophetic talent has nothing in it of the super- natural ; it indicates nothing more than great experience, with an extremely delicate organization, from which they derive the faculty of judging with ex- treme facility of causes, and of fore- seeing their very remote effects. This faculty is also found in animals, who foresee much better than man the varia- tions of the atmosphere, with the various changes of the weather. Birds have long been the prophets and even the guides of several nations who pretend to be extremely enlightened. It is, then, to their organization, exercised after a particular manner, that must be attributed those won- drous faculties which distinguish some beings. To have instinct only signifies to judge quickly, without requiring to make a long reasoning on the subject. Man's ideas upon vice and upon virtue are by no means innate ; they are, like * It appears that the most skilful practi- tioners in medicine have been men endowed with very acute feelings, similar to those of the physiognomists, by the assistance of which they judged with great facility of diseases, and very promptly drew their prognostics. OF THE SOUL. all others, acquired ; the judgment h forms is founded upon experience, whe ther true or false: this depends upo his conformation, and upon the habil that have modified him. The infan has no ideas either of the Divinity o of virtue : it is from those who instruc him that he receives these ideas : h makes more or less.use of them, accorc ing to his natural organization, or a his dispositions have been more or les exercised. Nature gives man legs, th nurse teaches him their use, his agilitj depends upon their natural conforma tion, and the manner in which h< exercises them. What is called taste in the fine arts is to be attributed, in the same manner only to the acuteness of man's organs practised by the habit of seeing ; ol comparing, and of judging certain' ob- jects : from whence results, to some of his species, the faculty of judging with great rapidity, or in the twinkling of an eye, the whole with its various rela- tions. It is by the force of seeing, of feeling, of experiencing objects, that he attains to a knowledge of them ; it is in consequence of reiterating this experience, that he acquires the power and the habit of judging with celerity. But this experience is by no means innate, for he did not possess it before he was born ; he is neither able to think, to judge, nor to have ideas, before he has feeling ; he is neither in a capacity to love nor to hate ; to approve nor to blame, before he has been moved either agreeably or disagreeably. This is however, what must be supposed by those who are desirous to make man admit innate ideas, or opinions infused by nature, whether in morals, theologv, or in any science. That his mind' should have the faculty of thought, and should occupy itself with an object, it is requisite it should be acquainted with its qualities ; that it may have a knowledge of these qualities, it is neces- sary that some of his senses should have been struck by them : thos^ objects, therefore, of which he does not know any of the qualities are nullities, or at least they do not exist for him. It will be asserted, perhaps, that the universal consent of man upon certain propositions, such as the whole is greater than its part, and upon all geometrical demonstrations, appear to S3 warrant the supposition of certain pri- mary notions that are innate, or not acquired. It may be replied, that these notions are always acquired, and that they are the fruit of an experience more or less prompt ; that it is requisite to have compared the whole Avith its part before conviction can ensue that the whole is the greater of the two. Man, when he is born, does not bring with him the idea that two and two make four ; but he is, nevertheless, very speedily convinced of its truth. Be- fore forming any judgment whatever, it is absolutely necessary to have com- pared facts. It is evident that those who have gratuitously supposed innate ideas, or notions inherent in man, have con- founded his organization, or his natur- al dispositions, with the habit by which 'le is modified, and with the greater or less aptitude he has of making experi- ments, and of applying them in his judgment. A man who has taste in minting, has, without doubt, brought with him into the world eyes more acute and more penetrating than an- other; but these eyes would by no means enable him to judge with >romptitude if he had never had occa- sion to exercise them ; much less, in ome respects, can those dispositions which are called natural be regarded as innate. Man is not at twenty years f age the same as he was when he ame into the world ; the physical auses that are continually acting upon ijm, necessarily have an influence upon lis organization, and so modify it, that (is natural dispositions themselves are ot at one period what they are at an- ther.* Every day may be seen chil- ren who, to a certain age, display a teat deal of ingenuity, a strong apti- ude for the sciences, and who finish y falling into stupidity. Others may e observed, who, during their infancy, ave shown dispositions but little fa- ourable to improvement, yet develop lemselves in the end, and astonish us * " We think," says La Motte Le Vayer, quite otherwise of things at one time than at nother : when young than when old when ungry than when our apnetite is satisfied the night than in the day when peevish an when cheerful ; thus varying every hour, y a thousand other circumstances which eep us in a state of perpetual inconstancy nd instability." 84 OF THE SOUL. by an exhibition of those qualities of which we judged them deficient: there arrives a moment in which the mind makes use of a multitude of experience which it has amassed without its hav- ing been perceived, and, if I may be allowed the expression, without their own knowledge. Thus, it cannot be too often repeat- ed, all the ideas, all the notions, all the modes of existence, all the thoughts of man are acquired. His mind cannot act and exercise itself but upon that of which it has knowledge ; it can under- stand either well or ill only those things which it has previously felt. Such of his ideas that do not suppose some ex- terior material object for their model, or one to which he is able to relate them, which are therefore called ab- stract ideas, are only modes in which his interior organ considers its own pe- culiar modifications, of which it chooses some without respect to others. The words which he uses to designate these ideas, such as bounty, beauty, order, intelligence, virtue, &c., do not offer any one sense if he does not relate them to, or if he does not explain them by those objects which his senses have shown him to be susceptible of those qualities, or of those modes of exist- ence and of acting, which are known to him. What is it that points out to him the vague idea of beauty, if he does not attach it to some object that has struck his senses in a particular manner, to which, in consequence, he attributes this quality ? What is it that represents the word intelligence, if he does not connect it with a certain mode of being and of acting? Does the word order signify any thing, if he does not relate it to a series of actions, to a chain of motion, by which he is affected in a certain manner? Is not the word virtue void of sense, if he does not apply it to those dispositions of his fellows which produce known effects, different from those which re- sult from contrary inclinations ? What do the words pain and pleasure offer to his mind in the moment when his organs neither suffer nor enjoy, if it be not the modes in which he has been affected, of which his brain conserves the remembrance or the impressions, and which experience has shown him to be either useful or prejudicial ? But when he hears the words spirituality, immateriality, incorporeality, divini- .ty, &c., pronounced, neither his senses nor his memory afford him any assist- ance: they do not furnish him with any means by which he can form an idea of their qualities, nor of the objects to which he ought to apply them : in that which is not matter, he can only see vacuum and emptiness, which can- not be susceptible of any one quality. All the errours and all the disputes of men, have their foundation in this, that they have renounced experience and the evidence of their senses, to give themselves up to the guidance of no- tions which they have believed infused or innate, although in reality they are no more than the effect of a distemper- ed imagination; of prejudices in which they have been instructed from their infancy ; with which habit has famili- arized them ; and which authority has obliged them to conserve. Languages are rilled Avith abstract words, to which are attached confused and vague ideas ; of which, when they come to be ex- amined, no model can be found in na- ture ; no object to which they can be related. When man gives himself the trouble to analyze things, he is quite surprised to find that those words which are continually in the mouths of men, never present any fixed and determi- nate idea : he hears them unceasingly speaking of spirits of the soul and its faculties of God and his attributes of duration of space of immen- sity of infinity of perfection of virtue of reason of sentiment of instinct of taste, &c., without his being able to tell precisely what they themselves understand by these words. And yet words appear to have been in- vented but for the purpose of represent- ing the images of things, or to paint, by the assistance of the senses, those known objects on which the mind is able to meditate, which it is compe- tent to appreciate, to compare, and to judge. For man to think of that which has not acted on any of his senses, is to think on words : it is a dream of sounds ; it is to seek in his own imagination for objects to which he can attach his wandering ideas. To assign qualities to these objects is, unquestionably, to redouble his extravagance. The word OF THE SOUL. God is destined to represent to him an object that has not the capacity to act on any one of his organs, of which, con- sequently, it is impossible for him to prove either the existence or the quali- ties ; still, his imagination, by dint of racking itself, will in some measure supply him with the ideas he wants, and compose some kind of a picture with the images or colours he is always obliged to borrow from those objects of which he has a knowledge : thus the Divinity has been represented under the character of a venerable old man, or under that of a puissant monarch, &c. It is evident, however, that man with some of his qualities has served for the model of this picture. But if he be informed that this God is a pure spirit ; that has neither body nor ex- tent ; that he is not contained in space ; that he is beyond nature ; here then he is plunged into emptiness; his mind no longer has any ideas : it no longer knows upon what it meditates. This, as will be seen in the sequel, is the source of those unformed notions which men have formed of the divinity ; they themselves annihilate him, by assem- bling incompatible and contradictory attributes.* In giving him moral and known qualities, they make him a man ; in assigning him the negative attributes of theology, they destroy all antecedent ideas ; they make him a mere nothing a chimera. From this it will appear that those sublime sci- ences which are called theology, psy- chology, metaphysics, have been mere sciences of words: morals and politics, which they too often infect, have, in consequence, become inexplicable enig- mas, which nothing short of the study of nature can enable us to expound. Man has occasion for truth ; it con- sists in a knowledge of the true rela- tions he has with those things which can have an influence on his welfare: these relations are to be known only by experience : without experience there can be no reason ; without" reason man is only a blind creature who conducts himself by chance. But how is he to acquire experience upon ideal objects, which his senses neither enable him to know nor to examine 1 How is he to assure himself of the existence and * See Vol. II., Chap. jv. the qualities of beings he is not able to feel ? How can he judge whether these objects be favourable or prejudi- cial to him ? How is he to know what he ought to love, what he should hate, what to seek after, what to shun, what to do, what to leave undone ? Yet it is upon this knowledge that his condi- tion in this world rests the only world of which he knows any thing ; it is upon this knowledge that morals is founded. From whence it may be seen, that, by causing him to blend vague theological notions with morals, or the science of the certain and invariable re- lations which subsist between man- kind, or by weakly establishing them upon chimerical beings, which have no existence but in his imagination, this science, upon which the welfare of so- ciety so much depends, is rendered uncertain and arbitrary, is abandoned to the caprices of fancy, is not fixed upon any solid basis. Beings essentially different by their natural organization, by the modifica- tions they experience, by the habits they contract, by the opinions they ac- quire, must of necessity think different- ly. His temperament, as we have seen, decides the mental qualities of man ; this temperament itself, is diversely modified in him ; from whence it con- secutively follows, his imagination can- not possibly be the same, neither can it create to him the same images. Each individual is a connected whole, of which all the parts have a necessary correspondence. Different eyes must see differently, must give extremely varied ideas of the objects they con template, even when these objects are real. What, then, must be the diver- sity of these ideas if the objects medi- tated upon do not act upon the senses ? Mankind have pretty nearly the same ideas, in the gross, of those substances that act on his organs with vivacity ; he is sufficiently in unison upon some qualities which he contemplates very nearly in the same manner ; I say very nearly, because the intelligence, the notion, the conviction of any one pro- position, however simple, however evi- dent, however clear it may be suppos- ed, is not, nor cannot be strictly the same in any two men. Indeed, one man not being another man, the firet cannot, for example, have rigorously OF THE SOUL. and mathematically the same notion of unity as the second, seeing that an identical effect cannot be the result of two different causes. Thus when men agree in their ideas, in their modes of thinking, in their judgment, in their passions, in their desires, and in their tastes, their consent does not arise from their seeing or feeling the same objects precisely in the same manner, but pretty nearly, for language is not, nor cannot be, sufficiently copious to de- signate the vast variety of shades, the multiplicity of imperceptible differ- ences which are to be found in their modes of seeing and thinking. Each man has, I may say, a language which is peculiar to himself alone, and this language is incommunicable to others. What harmony, then, can possibly ex- bt between them when they discourse with each other upon objects only known to their imagination ? Can this imagination in one individual, ever be the same as in another? How can they possibly understand each other when they assign to these objects quali- ties that can only be attributed to the particular manner in which their brain js affected. For one man to exact from another that he shall think like himself, is to insist that he shall be organized pre- cisely in the same manner, that he shall have been modified exactly the same in every moment of his existence ; that he shall have received the same tem- perament, the same nourishment, the same education ; in a word, that he shall require that other to be himself. Wherefore is it not exacted that all men shall have the same features ? Is man more the master of his opinions ? Are not his opinions the necessary con- sequence of his nature, and of those peculiar circumstances which, from his infancy, have necessarily had an influ- ence upon his mode of thinking and his manner of acting? If man be a con- nected whole, whenever a single fea- ture differs from his own, ought he not to conclude that it is not possible his brain can either think, associate ideas, imagine, or dream precisely in the same manner with that other. The diversity in the temperament of man is the natural and necessary source of the diversity of his passions, otnis taste, of his ideas of happiness. of his opinions of every kind. Thus the same diversity will be the fatal source of his disputes, of his hatreds, and of his injustice, every time he shall reason upon unknown objects, but to which he shall attach the greatest im- portance. He will never understand either himself or others in speaking of a spiritual soul, or of an immaterial God distinguished from nature; he will, from that moment, cease, to speak the same language, and he will never at- tach the same ideas to the same Avords. What, then, shall be the common standard that shall decide which is the man that thinks most correctly ? What is the scale by which to measure whr has the best regulated imagination '{ what balance shall be found sufficient- ly exact to determine whose knowledge is most certain when he agitates sub- jects which experience cannot enable him to examine ; that escape all his senses; that have no model; that are above reason? Each individual, each legislator, each speculator, each nation, has ever formed to himself 'different ideas of these things, and each believes that his own peculiar reveries ought to be preferred to those of his neighbours ; which always appear to him as absurd, as ridiculous, as false as his own can possibly have appeared to his fellow Each clings to his ow r n opinion, be- cause each retains his own peculiar mode of existence, and believes his happiness depends upon his attachment to his prejudices, which he never adopts but because he believes them beneficial to his welfare. Propose to a man to change his religion for yours, he will believe you a madman ; you will only excite his indignation, elicit his contempt ; he will propose to you, in his turn, to adopt his own peculiar opinions ; after much reasoning, you will treat each other as absurd beings, ridiculously opiniated and stubborn ; and he will display the least folly who shall first yield. But if the adversaries become heated in the dispute, which always happens when they suppose the matter important, or when they would defend the cause of their own self-love, then their passions sharpen, they grow angry, quarrels are provoked, they hate each other, and end by reciprocal in- jury. It is thus, that for opinions which no man can demonstrate, we OF THE SOUL. 8? see the Brahmin despised ; the Mo- hammedan hated ; the Pagan held in contempt; and that they oppress and disdain each other with the most ran- corous animosity : the Christian burns the Jew because he clings to the faith of his fathers; the Roman Catholic condemns the Protestant to the flames, and makes a conscience of massacring him in cold blood ; this reacts in his turn ; again the various sects of Chris- tians have leagued together against the incredulous, and for a moment sus- pended their own bloody disputes, that they might chastise their enemies : then, having glutted their revenge, they returned with redoubled fury to wreak over again their infuriated vengeance on each other. If the imaginations of men were the same, the chimeras which they bring forth would be everywhere the same ; there would be no disputes among them on this subject if they all dreamt in the same manner; great numbers of hu- man beings would be spared, if man occupied his mind with objects capable of being known, of which the existence was proved, of which he was compe- tent to discover the true qualities by sure and reiterated experience. Sys- tems of philosophy are subject to dis- pute only when their principles are not sufficiently proved ; by degrees expe- rience, in pointing out the truth, ter- minates these quarrels. There is no variance among geometricians upon the principles of their science ; it is only raised when their suppositions are false, or their objects too much com- plicated. Theologians find so much difficulty in agreeing among them- selves, simply because in their contests they divide without ceasing, not known and examined propositions, but preju- dices with which they have been im- bued in their youth, in the schools, in their books, &c. They are perpetually reasoning, not upon rea-l objects, of which the existence is demonstrated, but upon imaginary systems, of which they have never examined the reality ; they found these disputes not upon averred experience nor upon constant facts, but upon gratuitous suppositions, which each endeavours to convince the other are without solidity. Finding these ideas of long standing, and that few people refuse to admit them, they take them for incontestable truths, that ought to be received merely upon being announced ; whenever they attach great importance to them, they irritate them- selves against the temerity of those who have the audacity to doubt, or even to examine them. If prejudice had been laid aside, it would perhaps have been discovered that many of those objects which have given birth to the most shocking, the most sanguinary disputes among men, were mere phantoms which a little ex- amination would have shown to be un- worthy their notice. The most trifling reflection would have shown him the necessity of this diversity in his no tions, of this contrariety in his imagina- tion, which depends upon his natural conformation diversely modified, and which necessarily has an influence over his thoughts, over his will, and over his actions. In short, if he had con- sulted morals and reason, every thing would have proved to him, that beings who call themselves rational, were made to think variously, without or that account, ceasing to livepeaceabh with each other, love each other; am/ lend each other mutual succours ; and that whatever might be their opinions upon subjects either impossible to be known or to be contemplated under the same point of view : every thing would have joined in evidence to convince him of the unreasonable tyranny, of the un- just violence, and of the useless cruelty of those men of blood, who persecute mankind in order that they may mould others to their own peculiar opinions : every thing would have conducted mortals to mildness, to indulgence, to toleration ; virtues unquestionably of more real importance to the welfare of society than the marvellous specula- tions by which it is divided, and by which it is frequently hurried on to sa- crifice the pretended enemies to these revered opinions. From this it must be evident of what importance it is to morals to examine the ideas to which it has been agreed to attach so much worth, and to which man, at the irrational command of fan- atical and cruel guides, is continually sacrificing his own peculiar happiness and the tranquillity of nations. Let him return to experience, to nature, and to reason ; let him consult those objects. 88 OF MAN'S FREE AGENCY. that are real and useful to his perma- nent felicity ; let him study nature's laws; let him study himself; let him consult the bonds which unite him to his fellow mortals ; let him tear asun- der the fictitious bonds that enchain him to a mere phantom. If his ima- gination must always feed itself with illusions, if he remains steadfast in his own opinions, if his prejudices are dear to him, let him at least permit others to ramble in their own manner or seek after truth as best suits their inclina- tion ; but let him always recollect, that all the opinions, all the ideas, all the systems, all the wills, all the actions of man, are the necessary consequence of his nature, of his temperament, of his organization, and of those causes, either transitory or constant, which modify him : in short, that man is not more a free agent to think than to act: a truth that will be again proved in the following chapter. CHAPTER XI. Of the System of Man's Free Agency. THOSE who have pretended that the soul is distinguished from the body, is immaterial, draws its ideas from its own peculiar source, acts by its own energies, without the aid of any exterior object, have, by a consequence of their own system, enfranchised it from those physical laws according to which all beings of which we have a knowledge are obliged to act. They have believed that the soul is mistress of its own conduct, is able to regulate its own peculiar operations, has the faculty to determine its will by its own natural energy ; in a word, they have pretended that man is a. free agent. It has been already sufficiently proved that the soul is nothing more than the body considered relatively to some of its functions more concealed than others : it has been shown that this soul, even when it shall be supposed immaterial, i.s continually modified conjointly with the body, is submitted to all its motion, and that without this it would remain inert and dead : that, consequently, it is subjected to the influence of those material and physical causes which cive impulse to the body ; of which ihe mode of existence, whether habitual or transitory, depends upon the material elements by which it is surrounded, that form its texture, constitute its tem- perament, enter into it by means of the aliments, and penetrate it by their sub- tility. The faculties which are called intellectiial, and those qualities which are styled moral, have been explained in a manner purely physical and natu- ral. In the last place it has been demon- strated that all the ideas, all the systems, all the affections, all the opinions, whe- ther true or false, which man forms to himself, are to be attributed to his physical and material senses. Thus man is a being purely physical ; in whatever manner he is considered, he is connected to universal nature, and submitted to the necessary and immu- table laws that she imposes on all the beings she contains, according to their peculiar essences or to the respective properties with which, without consult- ing them, she endows each particular species. Man's life is a line that nature commands him to describe upon the surface of the earth, without his ever being able to swerve from it. even for an instant. He is born without his own consent ; his organization does in nowise depend upon himself; his ideas come to him involuntarily ; his habits are in the power of those who cause him to contract them ; he is unceasingly modified by causes, whether visible or concealed, over which he has no con- trol, which necessarily regulate his mode of existence, give the hue to his way of thinking, and determine his manner of acting. He is good or bad, happy or miserable, wise or foolish, reasonable or irrational, without his will being for any thing in these various states. Nevertheless, in despite of the shackles by which he is bound, it is pretended ne is a free agent, or that independent of the causes by which he is moved, he determines his own will, and regulates his own condition. However slender the foundation of this opinion, of which every thing ought to point out to him the errour, it is current at this day and passes for an incontestable truth with a great number of people, otherwise extremely enlight- ened ; it is the basis of religion, which, supposing relations between man and the unknown being she has placed above nature, has been incapable of imagining OF MAN'S FREE AGENCY. how man could either merit reward or deserve punishment from this being, if he was not a free agent. Society has been believed interested in this system ; because an idea has gone abroad, that if all the actions of man were to be contemplated as necessary, the right of punishing those who injure their associates would no longer exist. At length human vanity accommodated itself to a hypothesis which, unques- tionably, appears to distinguish man from all other physical beings, by assigning to him the special privilege of a total independence of all other causes, bul of which a very little reflec- tion would have shown him the impos- sibility. As a part subordinate to the great whole, man is obliged to experience its influence. To be a free agent, it were needful that each individual was of greater strength than the entire of nature ; or that he was out of this nature, who, always in action herself, obliges all the beings she embraces to act, and to concur to her general motion ; or, as it has been said elsewhere, to conserve her active existence by the motion that all beings produce in con- sequence of their particular energies, submitted to fixed, eternal, and immu- table laws. In order that man might be a free agent, it were needful that all beings should lose their essences ; it would be equally necessary that he himself should no longer enjoy physical sensibility ; that he should neither know good nor evil, pleasure nor pain ; but if this were the case, from that moment he would no longer be in a state to con- serve himself, or render his existence happy ; ail beings would become in- different to him ; he would no longer have any choice ; he would cease to know what he ought to love, what it was right he should fear; he would not have any acquaintance with that which he should seek after, or with that which it is requisite he should avoid. In short, man would be an .unnatural being, totally incapable of acting in the manner we behold. It is the actual essence of man to tend to his well being, or to be desirous to j conserve his existence ; if all the motion of his machine spring as a necessary consequence from this primitive im- pulse ; if pain warn him of that which No. TIL 12 he ought to avoid; if pleasure announce to him that which he should desire ; if it be in his essence to love that which either excites delight, or that from which he expects agreeable sensations; to hate that which either makes him fear contrary impressions or that which afflicts him with uneasiness ; it must necessarily be that he will be attracted by that which he deems advantageous ; that his will shall be determined by those objects which he judges useful ; that he will be repelled by those beings which he believes prejudicial, either to his habitual or to his transitory mode of existence. It is only by the aid of experience that man acquires the faculty of understanding what he ought to love or to fear. Are his organs sound ? his experience will be true ; are they un- sound ? it will be false : in the first instance he will have reason, prudence, foresight ; he will frequently foresee very remote effects ; he will know that what he sometimes contemplates as a good, may possibly become an evil by its necessary or probable consequences; that what must be to him a transient evil, may by its result procure him a solid and durable good. It is thus experience enables him to foresee, that the amputation of a limb will cause him painful sensation, he consequently is obliged to fear this operation, and he endeavours to avoid the pain ; but, if experience has also shown him that the transitory pain this amputation will cause him may be the means of saving his life ; the preservation of his exist- ence being of necessity dear to him, he is obliged to submit himself to the momentary pain, with a view to pro- curing a permanent good by which it will be overbalanced. The will, as we have elsewhere said, is a modification of the brain, by which it is disposed to action, or prepared to give play to the organs. This will is necessarily determined by the qualities, good or bad, agreeable or painful, of the object or the motive that acts upon his senses, or of which the idea remains with him, and is resuscitated by his memory. In consequence, he acts ne- cessarily, his action is the result of the impulse he receives either from the motive, from the object, or from the idea which has modified his brain, or disposed his will. When he does not 90 OF MAN'S FREE AGENCY. act according to this impulse, it is because there comes some new cause, some new motive, some new idea, which modifies his brain in a different manner, gives him a new impulse, determines his will in another way, by which the action of the former impulse is suspended: tnus, the sight of an agreeable object, or its idea, determines his will to set him in action to procure it ; but if a new object or a new idea more powerfully attracts him, it gives a new direction to his will. annihilates the effect of the former, and prevents the action by which it was to be procured. This is the mode in which reflection, experience, reason, necessarily arrests or suspends the ac- tion of man's will : without this he would of necessity have followed the anterior impulse which carried him towards a then desirable object. In all this he always acts according to necessary laws, from which he has no means of emancipating himself. If when tormented with violent thirst, he figures to himself in idea, or really perceives a fountain, whose limpid streams might cool his feverish want, is he sufficient master of himself to desire or not to desire the object com- petent to satisfy so lively a want? It will no doubt be conceded, that it is impossible he should not be desirous to satisfy it; but it will be said if at this moment it is announced to him that the water he so ardently desires is poisoned, he will, notwithstanding his vehement thirst, abstain from drink- ing it : and it has, therefore, been falsely concluded that he is a free agent. The fact, however, is, that the motive in either case is exactly the same : his own conservation. The same necessity that determined him to drink before he knew the water was deleterious, upon this new discovery equally determines him not to drink; the desire of con- serving himself either annihilates or suspends the former impulse ; the second motive becomes stronger than the preceding, that is, the fear of death. or the desire of preserving himself, necessarily prevails over the painful sensation caused by his eagerness to jrink : but, it will be said, if the thirst is very parching, an inconsiderate man without regarding the danger will risk swallowing the water. Nothing is gained by this remark : in this case, the anterior impulse only regains the ascendency ; he is persuaded that life may possibly be longer preserved, or that he shall derive a greater good by drinking the poisoned water than by enduring the torment, which, to his mind, threatens instant dissolution : thus the first becomes the strongest and necessarily urges him on to action. Nevertheless, in either case, whether he partakes of the water, or whether he does not, the two 'actions will be equally necessary ; they will be the effect of that motive which finds itself most puissant ; which consequently acts in the most coercive manner upon his will. This example will serve to explain the whole phenomena of the human will. This will, or rather the brain, finds itself in the same situation as a bowl, which, although it has received an impulse that drives it forward in a straight line, is deranged in its course whenever a force superior to the first obliges it to change its direction. The man who drinks the poisoned water appears a madman ; but the actions of fools are as necessary as those of the most prudent individuals. The motives that determine the voluptuary and the debauchee to risk their health, are as powerful, and their actions are as neces- sary, as those which decide the wise man to manage his. But, it will be insisted, the debauchee may be pre- vailed on to change his conduct: this does not imply that he is a free agent; but that motives may be found suffi- ciently powerful to annihilate the effect of those that previously acted upon him ; then these new motives determine his will to the new mode of conduct he mny adopt as necessarily as the former did to the old mode. Man is said, to deliberate, when the action of the will is suspended ; this happens when two opposite motives act alternately upon him. To delibe- rate, is to hate and to love in succession ; it is to be alternately attracted and re- pelled ; it is to be moved, sometimes by one motive, sometimes by another. Man only deliberates when he does not distinctly understand the quality of the objects from which he receives impulse, or when experience has not sufficiently apprised him of the effects, OP MAN'S FREE AGENCY. 91 more or less remote, which his action will produce. He would take the air but the weather is uncertain ; he delibe rates in consequence ; he weighs th various motives that urge his will to g. out or to stay at home ; he is at lengl] determined by that motive which i: most probable ; this removes his inde cision, which necessarily settles his, will, either to remain within or to go abroad : this motive is always either the immediate or ultimate advantage he finds, or think^ he finds, in the action to which he is persuaded. Man's will frequently fluctuates be- tween two objects, of which either the presence or the ideas move him alter- nately : he waits until he has contem- plated the objects, or the ideas they have left in his brain which solicit him to different actiaps ; he then compares these objects or^deas ; but even in the time of deliberation, durftig the com- parison, pending these alternatives of love and hatred which succeed each other, sometimes with the utmost ra- pidity, he is not a free agent for a single instant; the good or the evil which he believes he finds successively in the objects, are the necessary motives of these momentary wills; of the rapid motion of desire or fear, that he expe- riences as long as his uncertainty con- tinues. From this it will be obvious that deliberation is necessary ; that uncertainty is necessary ; that -what- ever part he takes, in consequence of this deliberation, it .will always neces- sarily be that which he has judged, whether well or ill, is most probable to turn to his advantage. When the soul is assailed by two motives that act alternately upon it, or modify it successively, it deliberates; the brain is in a sort of equilibrium, accompanied with perpetual oscilla- tions, sometimes towards one object, sometimes towards the other, until the most forcible carries the point, and thereby extricates it from this state of suspense, in which consists the inde- cision of his will. But when the brain is simultaneously assailed by causes equally strong that m<*ve it in opposite directions, agreeable to the general law of all bodies when they are struck equally by contraiy powers, it stops, it is in nisu; it is neither capable to will nor to act; it waits until one of the two causes has obtained sufficient force to overpower the other : to deter- mine its will; to attract it la such a manner that it may prevail over the efforts of the other cause. This mechanism, so simple, so natu- ral, suffices to demonstrate why uncer- tainty is painful, and why suspense is always a violent state foi- man. The brain, an organ so delicate and so mobile, experiences such rapid modi- fications that it is fatigued ; or when it is urged in contrary directions, by causes equally powerful, it suffers a kind of compression, that prevents the activity which is suitable to the preservation of the whole, and which is necessary to procure what is advantageous 10 its existence. This mechanism will also explain the irregularity, the indecision, the inconstancy of man, and account for that conduct which frequent] y ap- pears an inexplicable mystery, and which is, indeed, the effect of the received systems. In consulting expe- rience, it will be found that the soul is submitted to precisely the same physi- cal laws as the material body. If the will of each individual, during a given time, was only moved by a single cause or passion, nothing would be more easy ban to forest his actions; but his icart is frequently assailed by contrary powers, by adverse motives, which ather act on him simultaneously or in uccession; then his brain, attracted in opposite directions, is either fatigued, or else tormented by a state of "com' session, which deprives it of Activity. Sometimes it is in a state of in com- modious inaction ; sometimes it is the port of the alternate shocks it under- goes. Such, no doubt, is the state in vhich man finds himself when a lively )assion solicits him to the commission )f crime, whilst fear points out to him he danger by which it is attended : uch, also, is the condition of him whom emorse, by the continued labour of his istracted soul, prevents from enjoying he objects he has criminally obtained. If the powers or causes, whether xterior or interior, acting OH the mind f man, tend towards opposite points, his soul, as well as all other bodies, will take a mean direction between the two; and in consequence of the violence with which his soul is urged, his con- dition becomes sometimes so painful 92 OP MAN'S FREE AGENCY. that his existence is troublesome : he has no longer a tendency to his own peculiar conservation ; he seeks after death as a sanctuary against himself, and as the only remedy to his despair : it is thus we behold men, miserable and discontented, voluntarily destroy themselves whenever life becomes in- supportable. Man cannot cherish his existence any longer than life holds out charms to him: when he is wrought upon by painful sensations, or drawn by contrary impulsions, his natural tendency is deranged ; he is under the necessity to follow a new route ; this conducts him to his end, which it even displays to him as the most desirable good. In this manner may be explained the conduct of those melancholy beings, whose vicious temperaments, whose tortured consciences, whose chagrin, whose ennui sometimes determine them to renounce life.* The various powers, frequently very complicated, that act either successively or simultaneously upon the brain of man, which modify him so diversely in the different periods of his existence, are the true causes of that obscurity in morals, of that difficulty which is found, when it is desired to unravel the concealed springs of his enigmaticsd conduct. The heart of man is a labyrinth, only because it very rarely happens that we possess the necessary gift of judging it ; from whence it will appear, that his circum- stances, his indecision, his conduct, whether ridiculous or unexpected, are the necessary consequences of the changes operated in him ; are nothing but the effect of motives that succes- sively determine his will ; which, are dependant on the frequent variations experienced by his machine. According to these variations the same motives have not always the same influence over his will ; the same objects no longer enjoy the faculty of pleasing him ; his temperament has changed, either for the moment, or for ever: it follows as a consequence, that his taste, his desires, .his passions, will change ; * See Chapter xiv. Man is oftenrr induced to destroy himself by mental than by bodily pains. A thousand things may cause him to forget his bodily sufferings, whilst in those of the mind his brain is wnolly absorbed ; and this is the reason why intellectual pleasures are superior to all others. there can be no kind of uniformity in his conduct ; nor any certitude in the effects to be expected. Choice by no means proves the free agency of man : he only deliberates when he does not yet know which to choose of the many objects that move him, he is then in an embarrassment, which does not terminate until his will is decided by the greater advantage he believes he shall find in the object he chooses, or the action he undertakes. From whence it may be seen, that choice is necessary, because he would not determine for an object, or for an action, if he did not believe that he should find in it some direct advantage. That man should have free agency it were needful that he 'should be able to will or choose without motive, or that he could prevent mot^es coercing his will. Action always Being the effect of his will once determined, and as his will cannot be determined but by a motive which is not in his own power, it follows that he is never the master of the determination of his own pecu liar will ; that consequently he uevei acts as a free agent. It has been be- lieved that man was a free agent be- cause he had a will with the power of choosing ; but attention has not been paid to the fact that even his u'ill is moved by causes independent of him- self; is owing to that which is inherent in his own organization, or which be- longs to the nature of the beings acting on him.f Is he the master of willing not to withdraw his hand from the fire when he fears it will be burnt? Or has he the power to take away from fire the property which makes him fear it ? Is he the master of not choosing a dish of meal, which he knows to be agreeable, or analogous to his palate ; t Man passes a great portion of his life without even willing. His will depends on the motive by which he is determined. If he were to render an exact account of every thing he does in the course of each day from rising in the morning to lying down at. night he would find that not one of his actions have been in the least voluntary ; that they have been mechanical, habitual, determined by causes he was not able to foresee ; to which he was either obliged to yield, or with which lie wns allured to acquiesce: he would discover, that all the motives of his labours, of his amuse- ments, of his discourses, of his thoughts, have | been necessary ; that they have evidently i either seduced him or drawn him along. OF MAN'S FREE AGENCY. of nut preferring it to that which he knows to be disagreeable or dangerous? It is always according to his sensa- tions, to his own peculiar experience, or to his suppositions, that he judges of things, either well or ill ; but what- ever may be his judgment, it depends necessarily on his mode of feeling, whether habitual or accidental, and the qualities he finds in the causes that move him, Wjhich exist in despite of himself. *>- All the causes by which his will is actuated, must act upon him in a man- ner sufficiently marked to give him some sensation, some perception, some idea ; whether complete or incomplete, true or false: as soon as his will is de- termined, he must have felt either strongly or feebly ; if this was not the case he would have determined with- out motive : thus, to speak correctly, there are no causes which are truly in- different to the will : however faint the impulse he receives, whether on the part of the objects themselves, or on 'the part of their images or ideas, as soon as his will acts, the impulse has been competent to determine him. In consequence of a slight or feeble im- pulse, the will is weak ; it is this weak- ness in his will, that is called indiffer- ence. His brain with difficulty per- ceives the sensation it has received ; it consequently acts with less vigour, either to obtain or to remove the object or the idea that has modified it. If the impulse is powerful, the will is strong, it makes him act vigorously to obtain or to remove the object which appears to him either very agreeable or very in- commodious. It has been believed that man was a free agent, because it has been imagin- ed that his soul could at will recall ideas which sometimes suffice to check hi* most unruly desires.* Thus, the idea of a remote evil, frequently prevents him from enjoying a present and actual good : thus remembrance, which is an almosf insensible or slight modification of his brain, annihilates, at each in- stant, the real objects that act upon his will. But he is not master of recalling to himself his ideas at pleasure; their association is independent of him; they * St. Augustine says : " Non enim cmqiwm in potestate est quid veniat in mentem." are arranged in his brain in despite of him and without his own knowledge, where they have made an impression more or less profound ; his memory it- self depends upon his organization ; its fidelity depends upon the habitual or momentary state in which he finds him- self; when his will is vigorously deter- mined to some object or idea that excites a very lively passion in him, those objects or ideas that would be able to arrest his action, no longer pre- sent themselves to his mind ; in those moments his eyes are shut to the dangers that menace him ; of which the idea ought to make him forbear; he marches forwards headlong towards the object by whose image he is hur- ried on ; reflection cannot operate upon him in any way ; he sees nothing but the object of his desires ; the salutary ideas which might be able to arrest his progress disappear, or else display themselves either too faintly or too late to prevent his acting. Such is the case with all those who, blinded by some strong passion, are not in a condition to recall to themselves those motives, of which the idea alone, in cooler mo- ments, would be sufficient to deter them from proceeding ; the disorder in which they are, prevents their judging sound- ly ; renders them incapable of foresee- ing the consequence of their actions ; precludes them from applying to their experience ; from making use of their reason ; natural operations which sup- pose a justness in the manner of asso- ciating their ideas, but to which their brain is then not more competent, in consequence of the momentary deliri- um it suffers, than their hand is to write whilst they are taking violent exercise. Man's mode of thinking is necessari- ly determined by his manner of being; it must therefore depend on his natural organization, and the modification his system receives independently of his will. From this, we are obliged to conclude, that his thoughts, his reflec- tions, his manner of viewing things, of feeling, of judging, of combining ideas, is neither voluntary nor free. In a word, that his soul is neither mistress of the motion excited in it, nor of rep- resenting to itself, when wanted, those images or ideas that are capable of counterbalancing the impulse it re- OF MAN'S FREE AGENCY. ceives. This is the reason, why man, when in a passion, ceases to reason ; at that moment reason is as impossible to oe heard, as it is during an ecstacy, or in a fit of drunkenness. The wicked are never more than men who are either drunk or mad ; if they reason, it is not until tranquillity is re-establish- ed in their machine; then, and not till then, the tardy ideas that present them- selves to their mind enable them to see the consequence of their actions, and give birth to ideas that bring on them that trouble, which is designated shame, regret, remorse. The errours of philosophers on the free agency of man, have arisen from their regarding his will as theprimum mobile, the original motive of his ac- tions ; for want of recurring back, they have not perceived the multiplied, the complicated causes which, independ- ently of him, give motion to the will itself; or which dispose and modify his brain, whilst he himself is purely passive in the motion he receives. Is he the master of desiring or not desir- ing an object that appears desirable to him ? Without doubt it will be an- swered, no : but he is the master of re- sisting his desire, if he reflects on the consequences. But, I ask, is he capa- ble of reflecting on these consequences, when his soul is hurried along by a very lively passion, which entirely de- pends upon his natural organization, and the causes by which he is modi- fied ? Is it in his power to add to these consequences all the weight necessary to counterbalance his desire? Is he the master of preventing the qualities which render an object desirable from residing in it? I shall be told: he ought to have learned to resist his pas- sions ; to contract a habit of putting a a curb on his desires. I agree to it without any difficulty. But in reply, I again ask, is his nature susceptible of this modification ? Does his boiling blood, his unruly imagination, the ig- neous fluid that circulates in his veins, permit him to make, enable him to ap- ply true experience in the moment when it is wanted ? And even when his temperament has capacitated him, has his education, the examples set be- fore him, the ideas with which he has been inspired in early life, been suitable to make him contract this habit of re- pressing his desires? Have not al l these things rather contributed to in- duce him to seek with avidity, to make him actually desire those objects which you say he ought to resist. The ambitious man cries out: you will have me resist my passion; but have they not unceasingly repeated to me that rank, honours, power, are the most desirable advantages in life ? Have I not seen my fellow citizens envy them, the nobles of my country sacrifice every thinp 1 to obtain them ? In the society in which I live, am I not obliged to feel, that if I am deprived of these advantages, I must expect to languish in contempt ; to cringe under the rod of oppression ? The miser says : you forbid me to love money, to seek after the means of acquiring it : alas ! does not every thing tell me that, in this world, money is the greatest blessing ; that it is amply sufficient to render me happy ? In the country I inhabit, do I not see all my fellow citizens covetous of riches ? but do I not also witness that they are Iittl scrupulous in the means of obtaining wealth ? As soon as they are enrich- ed by the means \vhich you censure, are they not cherished, considered and respected ? By what authority, then, do you defend me from amassing trea- sure ? what right have you to prevent my using means, which, although you call them sordid and criminal. I see ap- proved by the sovereign ? Will you have me renounce my happiness ? The voluptuary argues : you pre tend that I should resist my desires ; but was I the maker of my own tem- perament, which unceasingly invites me to pleasure? You call my plea- sures disgraceful ; but in the country in which I live, do I not witness the most dissipated men enjoying the most distinguished rank ? Do I not behold that no one is ashamed of adultery but the husband it has outraged ? do not I see men making trophies of their de- baucheries, boasting of their libertinism, rewarded with applause ? The choleric man vociferates : you advise me to put a curb on my passions, and to resist the desire of avenging myself: but can I conquer my nature? Can I alter the received opinions of the world ? Shall I not be for ever dis- graced, infallibly dishonoured in so- OP MAN'S FREE AGENCY. r.iety, if I do not wash out in the blood of ray fellow creature the injuries have received ? The zealous enthusiast exclaims you recommend me mildness ; you ad vise me to be tolerant; to be indulgen to the opinions of my fellow men ; bu is not my temperament violent? Do I not ardently love my God ? Do they not assure me, that zeal is pleasing to him ; that sanguinary inhuman perse- cutors have been his friends ? As 1 wish to render myself acceptable in his sight, I therefore adopt the same means. In short, the actions of man are never free ; they are always the necessary consequence of his temperament, of the received ideas, and of the notions, either true or false, which he has form- ed to himself of happiness ; of his opin- ions, strengthened by example, by edu- cation, and by daily experience. So many crimes are witnessed on the earth only because every thing con- spires to render man vicious and crimi- nal ; the religion he has adopted, his government, his education, the exam- ples set before him, irresistibly drive him on to evil: under these circum- stances, morality preaches virtue to him in vain. In those societies where vice is esteemed, where crime is crown- ed, where venality is constantly re- compensed, where the most dreadful disorders are punished only in those who are too weak to enjoy the privilege of committing them with impunity, the practice of virtue is considered nothing more than a painful sacrifice of happi- ness. Such societies chastise, in the lower orders, those excesses which they respect in the higher ranks^ and fre- quently have the injustice to condemn those in the penalty of death, whom public prejudices, maintained by con- stant example, have rendered criminal. Man, then, is not a free agent in any one instant of his life ; he is necessari- ly guided in each step by those advan- tages, whether real or fictitious, that he attaches to the objects by which his passions are roused : these passions themselves are necessary in a being who unceasinglv tends towards his own happiness ; their energy is necessary, since tnat depends on his tempera- ment; his temperament is necessary, because it depends on the physical ele- ments which enter into his composi- tion ; the modification of this tempera- ment is necessary, as it is the infalli- ble and inevitable consequence of the impulse he receives from the incessant action of moral and physical beings. In despite of these proofs of the want of free agency in man, so clear to un- prejudiced minds, it will, perhaps, be insisted upon with no small feeling of triumph, that if it be proposed to any one, to move or not to move his hand, an action in the number of those called indifferent, he evidently appears to be the master of choosing ; from which it is concluded that evidence has been offered of his free agency. The reply is, this example is perfectly simple ; man in performing some action which he is resolved on doing, does not by any means prove his free agency : the very desire of displaying this quality, excited by the dispute, becomes a ne- cessary motive, which decides his will either for the one or the other of these actions: what deludes him in this in- stance, or that which persuades him he is a free agent at this moment, is, that he does not discern the true motive which sets him in action, namely, the desire of convincing his opponent : if in the heat of the dispute he insists and asks, ' : Am I not the master of throwing myself out of the window ?" I shall answer him, no u.that whilst he pre- serves his reason mere is no .probability that the desire of proving his free agency, will become a motive suffi- ciently powerful to make him sacrifice lis life to the attempt: if, notwith- standing this, to prove he is a free agent, he should actually precipitate limself from the window, it would not a sufficient warranty to conclude acted freely, but rather that it was the violence of his temperament which spurred him on to this folly. Madness is a state, that depends upon the heat of the blood, not upon the will. A "anatic or a hero, braves death as ne- :essarily as a more phlegmatic man or a coward flies from it.* * There is, in point of fact, no difference >etween the man that is cast out of the win- low by another, and the man who throws limself out of it, except that the impulse in he first instance comes immediately from without, whilst that which determines the fall in the second case, springs from within his own peculiar machine, having its more rt>- 96 OF MAX'S FREE AGENCY. It is said that free agency is the ab- sence of those obstacles competent to oppose themselves to the actions of man, or to the exercise of his faculties : it is pretended that he is a free agent whenever, making use of these facul- ties, he produces the effect he has pro- posed to himself. In reply to this rea- soning, it is sufficient to consider that it in nowise depends upon himself to place or remove the obstacles that either determine or resist him ; the motive that causes his action is no more in his own power than the obsta- cle that impedes him, whether this ob- stacle or motive be within his own ma- chine or exterior of his person : he is not master of the thought presented to his mind, which determines his will ; this thought is excited by some cause independent of himself. To be undeceived on the system of his free agency, man has simply to re- cur to the motive by which his will is determined ; he will always find this motive is out of his own controul. It is said : that in consequence of an idea to which the mind gives birth, man acts freely if he encounters no obstacle. But the question is, what gives birth to this idea in his brain? was he the master either to prevent it from pre- senting itself, or from renewing itself in his brain 1 Does not this idea depend either upon objects that strike him ex- teriorly and in despire of himself, or upon causes, that without his know- ledge, act within himself and modify his brain ? Can he prevent his eyes, cast without design upon any object whatever, from giving him an idea of this object, and from moving his brain? He is not more master of the obstacles ; they are the necessary effects of either interior or exterior causes, which al- mote cause also exterior. When Mutius .Scaevola held his hand in the fire, he was as much acting under the influence of necessity (caused by interior motived that urged him to this strange action, as ifnis arm had been held by strong men : pride, despair, the desire of braving his enemy, a wish to astonish him, an anxiety to intimidate him, &c., were the invisible chains that held his hand bound to the fire. The love of glory, enthusiasm for their country, in like manner caused Codrus and Decius to devote themselves for their fellow-citizens. The Indian Colanus and the philosopher Peregrinus were equally obliged to burn themselves, by desire of exciting the astonishment of the Grecian assembly ways act according to their given pro- perties. A man insults a coward, this necessarily irritates him against his in- sulter, but his will cannot vanquish the obstacle that cowardice places to the object of his desire, because his natural conformation* which does not depend upon himself, prevents his having courage. In this case, the coward is insulted in despite of himself; and against his will is obliged patiently to brook the insult he has received. The partisans of the system of free agency appear ever to have confound- ed constraint with necessity. Man be- lieves he acts as a free agent, every time he does not see any thing that places obstacles to his actions ; he does not perceive that the motive which causes him to will, is always necessary and independent of himself. A pris- oner loaded with chains is compelled to remain in prison ; but he is not a free agent in the desire to emancipate himself; his chains prevent him from acting, but they do not prevent him from willing ; he would save himself if they would loose his fetters ; but he would not save himself as a free agent ; fear or the idea of punishment would be sufficient motives for his action. Man may, therefore, cease 10 be restrained, without, for that reason, becoming a free agent : in whatever manner he acts, he will act necessarily, according to motives by which he shall be determined. He may be compared to a heavy body that finds itself arrested in its descent by any obstacle whatever: take away this obstacle, it will gravi- tate or continue to fall ; but who shall say this dense body is free to fall or not? Is not its descent the necessary effect of it^own specific gravity ? The virtuous Socrates submitted to the laws of his country, although they were unjust ; and though the doors of his jail were left open to him, he would not save himself; but in this he did not act as a free agent : the invisible chains of opinion, the secret love of decorum, the inward respect for the laws, even when they were iniquitous, the fear of tarnishing his glory, kept him in his prison ; they were motives sufficiently powerful with this enthu- siast for virtue, to induce him to wait death with tranquillity ; it was not in his power to save himself, because hf. OF MAN'S FREE AGENCY. 97 could find no potential motive to bring him to depart, even for an instant, from those principles to which his mind was accustomed. Man, it is said, frequently acts against his inclination, from whence it is falsely concluded he is a free agent ; but when he appears to act contrary to his inclina- tion, he is always determined to it by some motive sufficiently efficacious to vanquish this inclination. A sick man, with a view to his cure, arrives at conquering his repugnance to the most disgusting remedies: the fear of pain, or the dread of death, then becomes necessary motives; consequently this sick man cannot be said to act freely. When it is said, that man is not a free agent, it is not pretended to com- pare him to a body moved by a simple impulsive cause : he contains within himself causes inherent to his existence; he is moved by an interior organ, which has its own peculiar laws, and is itself necessarily determined in consequence of ideas formed from perceptions result- ing from sensations which it receives from exterior objects. As the mechanism of these sensations, of these perceptions, and the manner they engrave ideas on the brain of man, are not known to him ; because he is unable to unravel all these motions ; because he cannot perceive the chain of operations in his soul, or the motive principle that acts within him, he supposes himself a free agent; which, literally translated, signifies, that he moves himself by himself; that he determines himself without cause : when he rather ought to say, that he is ignorant how or for why he acts in the manner he does. It is true the soul enjoys an activity peculiar to itself: but it is equally certain that this activity would never be displayed, if some motive or some cause did not put^ it in a condition to exercise itself: at* least it will not be pretended that the soul is able either to love or to hate without being moved, without knowing the objects, without having some idea of their qualities. Gunpowder has Unquestionably a particular activity, but this activity will never display itself, unless fire be applied to it ; this, noweyer, immediately sets it in motion. It is the great complication of motion in man, it is the variety of his action, it is the multiplicity of causes that move No. IV.- 13 him, whether simultaneously or in con- tinual succession, that persuades him he is a free agent: if all his motions were simple, if the causes that move him did not confound themselves with each other, if they were distinct, if his machine were less complicated, he would perceive that all his actions were necessary, because he would be enabled to recur instantly to the cause that made him act. A man who should be always obliged to go towards the west, would always go on that side ; but he would feel that, in so going, he was not a free agent : if he had another sense, as his actions or his motion, augmented by a sixth, would be still more varied and much more compli- cated, he would believe himself still more a free agent than he does with his five senses. It is, then, for want of recurring to the causes that move him ; for want of being able to analyze, from not being competent to decompose the compli- cated motion of his machine, that man believes himself a free agent : it is only upon his own ignorance that he founds the profound yet deceitful notion he has of his free agency ; that he builds those opinions which he brings forward as a striking proof of his pretended freedom of action. If, for a short time, each man was willing to examine hi? own peculiar actions, search out their true motives to discover their concatena- tion, he would remain convinced that the sentiment he has of his natural free agency, is a chimera that must speedily be destroyed by experience. Nevertheless itmust be acknowledged that the multiplicity and diversity of the causes which continually act upon man, tequently without even his knowledge, render it impossible, or at least extremely difficult for him to recur to the true prin- ciples of his own peculiar actions, much 'ess the actions of others : they frequent- y depend upi causes so fugitive, so remote from their effects, and which, uperficially examined, appear to have so little analogy, so slender a relation with them, that it requires singular sagacity to bring them into light. This s what renders the study of the moral man a task of 'such difficulty; this is the reason why his heart is an abyss, of which it is frequently impossible for him to fathom the depth. He is then 98 OF MAN'S FREE AGENCY. obligee! to content himself with a know- ledge of the general and necessary laws tjy which the human heart is regulated : for the individuals of his own species these laws are pretty nearly the same ; they vary only in consequence of the organization that is peculiar to each, and of the modification it undergoes: this,, however, cannot be rigorously the same in any two. It suffices to know, that by his essence, man tends to con- serve himself, and to render his exist- ence happy : this granted, whatever may be his actions, if he recur back to this first principle, to this general, this necessary tendency of his will, he never can be deceived with regard to his motives. Man, without doubt, for want of cultivating reason and expe- rience, frequently deceives himself upon the means of arriving at this end ; some- times the means he employs are un- pleasant to his fellows, because they are prejudicial to their interests ; or else those of which he avails himself appear irrational, because they remove him from the end to which he would approximate : but whatever may be these means, they have always neces- sarily and invariably for object either an existing or imaginary happiness, directed to preserve himself in a state analogous to his mode of existence, to his manner of feeling, to his way of thinking, whether durable or transitory. It is from having mistaken this truth, that the greater number of moral philo- sophers have made rather the romance than the history of the human heart; they have attributed the actions of man to fictitious causes ; at least they have not sousrht out the necessary motives of his conduct. Politicians and legis- lators have been in the same state of ignorance, or else impostors have found it much shorter to employ imaginary motive-powers, than those which really have existence : they have rather chosen to make him tremble uader incommo- dious phantoms, than guide him to virtue by the direct road to happiness, notwith- standing the conformity of the latter with the natural desires of his heart. However this may be, man either sees or believes he sees much more distinctly the necessary relation of effects with their causes in natural philosophy than in the human heart: at least he sees in the former sensible causes constantly produce sensible effects, ever the same, when the cir- cumstances are alike. After this he hesitates not to look upon physical effects as necessary ; whilst he refuses to acknowledge necessity in the acts of the human will : these he has, with- out any just foundation, attributed to a motive-power that acts independently by its own peculiar energy, which is capable of modifying itself without the concurrence of exterior causes, and which is distinguished from all ma- terial or physical beings. Agriculture is founded upon the assurance, afforded by experience, that the earth, cultivated and sown in a certain manner, when it has otherwise the requisite qualities, will furnish grain, fruit and flowers, either necessary for subsistence or pleasing to the senses. If things were considered without prejudice, it would be perceived, that in morals, education is nothing more than the agriculture of the mind ; that, like the earth, by reason of its natural disposition, of the culture bestowed upon it, of the seeds with which it is sown, of the seasons, more or less favourable that conduct it to maturity, we may be assured that the soul will produce either virtue or vice moral fruit, that will be either salubrious for man or baneful to spciety. Morals is the science of the relations that subsist between the minds, the wills, and the actions of men, in the same manner that geometry is the science of the relations that are found between bodies. Morals would be a chimera and would have no certain principles, if it was not founded upon the knowledge of the motives which must necessarily have an influence upon the human will, and which must necessarily determine the actions of human beings. If, in the moral as well as in the physical world, a cause, of which the action is not interrupted, be necessarily followed by a given effect, it flows consecutively that a reasonable educa- tion, grafted upon truth, and founded upon wise laws ; that honest principles instilled during youth ; virtuous exam- ples continually held forth ; esteem attached solely to merit and good actions ; contempt and shame and chastisements regularly visiting vice and falsehood and crime, are cause* OF MAN'S FREE AGENCY. 99 that would necessarily act on the will , man for loving himself; stigmatize him of man, and would determine the greater for seeking after his own happiness number of his species to exhibit virtue. ! insist that he must have supernatural But if, on the contrary, religion, politics, I assistance to enable him to become example, public opinion, all labour to good ; yet, notwithstanding the sup- countenance wickedness and to train posed free agency of man, it is insisted man viciously; if instead of fanning that nothing less than the author of his virtues they stifle good principles; nature himself, is necessary to destroy f instead of directing his studies to his the wicked desires of his heart but d vantage they render his education alas! this powerful agent himself is either useless or unprofitable; if this ' ' ' education itself, instead of groundin him in virtue, only inoculates him wit vice ; if, instead of inculcating reaso it imbues him with prejudice ; if, instea of making him enamoured of truth, furnishes him with false notions an with dangerous opinions ; if, instead o fostering mildness and forbearance, kindles in his breast only those passion which are incommodious to himself an hurtful to others ; it must be of necessit that the will of the greater number shal determine them to evil.* Here, with out doubt, is the real source from whenc springs that universal corruption o, which moralists, with great justice, sc loudly complain, without, however pointing out those causes of the evil which are as true as they are necessary Instead of this, they search for it in human nature ; say it is corrupt ;f blame * Many authors have acknowledged tin importance of a good education, and tha youth was the season to feed the human heart with wholesome diet ; but they have not felt that a good education is incompatible, nay impossible, with the superstition of man, since this commences with giving his mind a false bias; that it is equally inconsistent with arbi- trary government, because this always dreads, lest he should become enlightened, and is ever sedulous to render him servile, mean, con- temptible, and cringing ; that it is incongruous with laws that are too frequently bottomed on injustice; that it cannot obtain with those received customs that are opposed to good sense; that it cannot exist whilst public opinion is unfavourable to virtue ; above all, that it is absurd to expect it from incapable mstructers, from masters with weak minds, who have only ths ability to infuse into their scholars those false ideas with which they are memselves infected. t We can scarcely conceive a more baneful ^ctnne than that which inculcates the natu- ral corruption of man, and the absolute need >t the grace of God to make him good. Such a doctrine tends necessarily to discourage him; t either makes him sluggish or drives him t.) despair whilst waiting for this grace. What i strange system of morals is that of theo- logians, who attribute all moral evil to an found inefficacious to controul those unhappy propensities, which, under the fatal constitution of things, the most vigorous motives, as has been before observed, are continually infusing into the will of man. He is indeed inces- santly exhorted to resist these passions; to stifle and root them out of his heart: but is it not evident they are necessary to his welfare, and inherent in his nature ? Does not experience prove them to be useful to his conservation, since they have for object, only to avoid that which may be injurious and to procure that which may be advan- tageous? In short, is it not easy to be seen, that these passions well directed, that is to say, carried towards objects that are truly useful, that are really interesting to himself, which embrace the happiness of others, would neces- sarily contribute to the substantial and sermanent well-being of society ? The lassions of man are like fire, at once necessary to the wants of life, and equally capable of producing the most .errible ravages.^ Every thing becomes an impulse to he will : a single word frequently suffices to modify a man for the whole course of his life ; to decide for ever us propensities; an infant, who has Hirned his finger by having approached t too near to the flame of a lighted aper, is warned that he ought to abstain rom indulging a similar temptation ; man once punished and despised for aving committed a dishonest action, s not often tempted to continue so nginal sin, and all moral good to the pardon f it ! But it ought certainly not to excite urpnse that a moral system, founded upon ridiculous hypotheses, is of no efficacy. Vol. II. chap. viii. Theologians themselves, have felt, they ave acknowledged, the necessity of the pas- ons : many of the fathers of the church have reached this doctrine ; among the rest Father enault has written a book expressly on the ubject. entitled, Of the. Use qf the Passions 100 OF MAN'S FREE AGENCY. unfavourable a course. Under what- ever point of view man is considered, he never acts but after the impulse given to his will, whether it be by the will of others, or by more perceptible physical causes. The particular organi- zation decides the nature of the impulse; souls act upon souls that are analogous ; fiery imaginations act with facility upon strong passions, and upon imaginations easy to be inflamed : the surprising pro- gress of enthusiasm, the hereditary pro- pagation of superstition, the transmis- sion of religious errours from race to race, the excessive ardour with which man seizes on the marvellous, are effects as necessary as those which result from the action and reaction of bodies. In despite of the gratuitous ideas which man has formed to himself on his pretended free agency ; in defiance of the illusions of this supposed intimate sense, which, maugre his experience, persuades him that he is master of his will ; all his institutions are really founded upon necessity : on this, as on a variety of other occasions, practice throws aside speculation. Indeed, if it was not believed that certain motives embraced the power requisite, to deter- mine the will of man, to arrest the progress of his passions ; to direct them towards an end, to modify him, of what use would be the faculty of speech ? What benefit could arise from educa- tion, from legislation, from morals, even from religion itself? What does education achieve, save give the first impulse to the human will ; make man contract habits ; oblige him to persist in them ; furnish him with motives, whether true or false, to act after a given manner ? When the father either menaces his son with punishment, or promises him a reward, is he not con- vinced these things will act upon his will? What does legislation attempt except it be to present to the citizens of a state those motives which are supposed necessary to determine them TO perform some actions that are con- sidered worthy ; to abstain from com- mitting others that are looked upon as unworthy ? What is the object of morals, if it be not to show man that his interest exacts he should suppress the momentary ebullition of his pas- sions, with a view to promote a more certain happiness, a more lasting well- being, than can possibly result from the gratification of his transitory desires ? Does not the religion of all countries suppose the human race, together with the entire of nature, submitted to the irresistible will of a necessary being who regulates their condition after the eternal laws of immutable wisdom ? Is not this God, which man adores, the absolute master of their destiny ? Is it not this divine being who chooses and who rejects ? The anathemas fulminated by religion, the promises it holds forth, are they not founded upon the idea of the effects these chimeras will necessarily produce upon ignorant and timid people ? Is not man brought into existence by this kind Divinity without his own knowledge ? Is lie not obliged to play a part against his will ? Does not either his happiness or his misery depend on the part he plays ?* Education, then, is only necessity shown to children : legislation, is ne- cessity shown to thg members of the body politic: morals, is the necessity of the relations subsisting between men, shown to reasonable beings : in short, man grants necessity in every thing for which he believes he has certain un- erring experience : that of which he does not comprehend the necessary connexion of causes with their effects he styles probability : he would not act as he does, if he was not convinced, or, at least, if he did not presume that certain effects will necessarily follow his actions. The moralist preaches reason, because he believes it necessary * Every religion is evidently founded upon fatalism. Among the Greeks they supposed men were punished for their necessary iauits as may be seen in Orestes, in OZdipus, etc., who only committed crimes predicted by the oracles. Christians have made vain efforts to justify God Almighty in throwing the faults of men on their frtt will, which is opposed to Predestination, another name for t fatalis7n. However, their system of Grace will by no means obviate the difficulty, for God gives grace only to those whom he pleases. In all countries religion has no other foundation than the fatal decrees of an irresistible being who arbitrarily decides the fate of his creatures. All theological hypotheses turn upon this point ; and yet those theologians who regard the system of fatalism as false or dangerous, do not see that the Fall of Angels, Original Sin, Predestination, the System of Grace, the small number of the Elect, etc. incontestable prove that religion is a true system of fatalism to man : the philosopher writes, because e believes truth must sooner^ or later prevail over falsehood : theologians and tyrants necessarily hate truth and de- spise reason, because they believe them prejudicial to their interests : the sove- JMgn, who strives to terrify crime by he seventy of his laws, but who. never- theless, oftener renders it useful and sum n es7h CeSSai y t0 hiS P ur P ses > P re - bounds. All reckon e^fySpo^ 1 die power or upon the ScessLof thev make use of, and each OF MAN'S FREE AGENCY. is at once cruel, intolerant and inhuman : arbitrary power crushes him and obliges eC m > eac flatters himself, either with Ut ^ that these wilh a ese motves will have an influence on the conduct of mankind The education of man .3 commonly thus defective or ineffi- cacious, only because it is regulated by prejudice: even when this "education => good, it is but too often speedily counteracted and annihilated by eve y thing that takes place in society. Le-is- jation and politics are very frequently ST u t S; !S d serve no be " er w2 than to kindle passions in the bosom rf man, wh.ch, once set afloat, they are no longer competent to restrain. The great art of the moralist should be to Crn n S and vici "s crime with punishment only n those who are too feeble to oppose its course, or when it has become incapable of restraining the violent excesses to which a bad government f'T^b^h. In short, education neg- lected and despised, depends either upon priests, who are impostor^ else upon parents without understand- mg and devoid of morals, who impress on the ductile mind of their scholars those vices with which they are them- ' - ' and who transmit to the false opinions which they have an interest in making them adopt. All this proves the necessity of recur- ring to the primitive source of man's wanderings if it be seriously intended to furnish him with suitable remedies It is useless to dream of correcting his true ca ^s tha are unravelled, or until s sou e to point out to man and to those who are intrusted with the office of ' fieh d, that their reciprocal h depends upon the harmony o passions; that the safety, the powe ratl0n , . V11C guuu sense diffused among the individual members ; on he truth of the notions inculcated in the mind of the citizens; on the moral goodness that is sown in their hearts on the virtues that are cultivated in their breasts. Religion should not be admissible unless it truly fortified and strengthened these motives, and unless it were possible for falsehood to lend real assistance to truth. But in the miserable state into which errour has plunged a considerable portion of the human species, man, for the most part, is obliged to be wicked or to injure his ellow creature ; the strongest motives invite him to the commission of evil pon renders him a useless being;' lakes him an abject slave ; causes him under its terrours; or else mistakes, move his , aic unravelled, or unl more real, more beneficial, more certain motives, are substituted for those which are found so inefficacious and so dan-er- ous both to society and to himself. It is or those who guide the human will who regulate the condition of nations, to ,eek after these motives with which reason will readily furnish them ; even good book, by touching the heart of great prmce, may become a very powerful cause that shall necessarily have an influence over the conduct of a who e people; that shall decide upon race Y * P rti Q f the hunian From all that has been advanced in this chapter, ,t results, that in no one moment of his existence is man a free rent. He is not the architect of his own conformation, which he hold rn tiiro . kn I. nature 'ature; he has no controul over his JTb a \ r Ver the modifiSn of us brain ; these are due to causes, that knoX f hlm ' a - nd Without his knowledge unceasingly act upon him- he is not the master of not loving"; hich he --o -"" uivu ue anas amiable desirable; he is not capable of refusing to dehherate, when he is un- certain of the t fleets - mud us icrrours : or plsp will K j "cueves . *... i- a r^s fana ; ic , $ SSSrUfJS^SfeS certain objects r -- u^wji uim ; he cannot - choosing that which he believes SL b T S !^ d !? nta ^ us ! him; in 102 OF MAN'S FREE AGENCY. oy his choice he is not competent to act otherwise than he does. In what instance, then, is he the master of his own actions? In what moment is he a free agent ?* That Avhich a man is about to do, is always a consequence of that which he has been of that which he is of that which he has done up to the moment of the action : his total and actual existence, considered under all its possible circumstances, contains the sum of all the motives to the action he is about to commit ; this is a principle the truth of which no thinking being will be able to refuse accrediting : his life is a series of necessary moments ; his conduct, whether good or bad, vir- tuous or vicious, useful or prejudicial, either to himseli or to others, is a con- catenation of action, as necessary as all the moments of his existence. To live, is to exist in a necessary mode during the points of that duration which succeed each other necessarily : to will, is to acquiesce or not in remaining such as he is : to be free, is to yield to the necessary motives he carries within himself. If he understood the play of his organs, if he was able to recall to himself all the impulsions they have received, all the modifications they have undergone, ' all the effects they have produced, he would perceive that all his actions are submitted to that fatality, which regulates his own par- ticular system, as it does the entire system of the universe : no one effect in him, any more than in nature, pro- duces itself by chance ; this, as has been before proved, is a word void of sense. All that passes in him ; all that is done by him ; as well as all that happens in nature, or that is attributed * The question of Free Will may be reduced to this : Liberty, or Free Will, cannot be associated with any known functions of the soul ; for the soul, at the moment in which it acts, deliberates, or wills, cannot act, delibe- rate, or will otherwise than it does, because a thing cannot exist and not exist at the same time. Now, it is my will, such as it is, that makes me deliberate ; my deliberation, that makes me choose; my choice that makes me act ; my determination that makes me execute that which my deliberation has made me choose, and I have only deliberated because I have had motives which rendered it impossible for me not to be willing to deliberate. Thus liberty is not found either in the will, in the to her, is derived from necessary causes, Avhich act according to necessary laws, and which produce necessary effects from whence necessarily flow others. Fatality, is the eternal, the immu- table, the necessary order, established in nature ; or the indispensable con- nexion of causes that act, with the effects they operate. Conforming to this order, heavy bodies fall ; light bodies rise ; that which is analogous in matter reciprocally attracts ; that which is heterogeneous mutually repels ; man congregates himself in society, modifies each his fellow ; becomes either virtuous or wicked ; either con- tributes to his mutual happiness, or reciprocates his misery ; either loves his neighbour, or hat . . 105 the laws, public opinion, example, habit, fear, are the causes that must modify associated man, influence his will, regulate his passions, restrain the actions of him who is capable of in- juring the end of his association, and thereby make him concur to the gene- ral happiness. These causes are of a nature to make impressions on every man whose organization and whose essence place him in a capacity to contract the habits, the modes of think- ing, and the manner of acting, with which society is willing to inspire him. All the individuals of the human species are susceptible of fear ; from whence it flows as a natural consequence, 'that the fear of punishment, or the privation of the happiness he desires, are motives that must necessarily more or less jnflu- ence his will, and regulate his actions. If the man is to be found, who is so badly constituted as to resist or to be No. IV. U insensible to those motives which operate upon all his fellows, he is not fit to live in society ; he would contra- dict the very end of his association ; he would be its enemy; he would place obstacles to its natural tendency ; his rebellious disposition, his unsociable will, not being susceptible of that modi- fication which is convenient to his own true interests and to the interests of his fellow citizens, these would unite them- selves against such an enemy ; and the law which is the expression of the general will, would visit with condign punishment that refractory individual upon whom the motives presented to him by society had not the effect which it had been induced to expect: in con- sequence such an unsociable man would be chastised ; he would be rendered miserable ; and according to the nature of his crime he would be excluded from society, as a being but little calculated to concur in its views. If society has the right to conserve itself, it has also the right to take the means : these means are the laws which present to the will of man those motives which are most suitable to deter him from committing injurious actions. If these motives fail of the proper effect, if they are unable to influence him, society, for its own peculiar good, is obliged to wrest from him the power of doing it farther injury. From what- ever source his actions may arise, whether they are the result of free agency, or whether they are the off- spring of necessity, society coerces him, if after having furnished him with mo- tives sufficiently powerful to act upon reasonable beings, it perceives that these motives have not been compe- tent to vanquish his depraved nature. It punishes him with justice, when the actions from which it dissuades him are truly injurious to society ; it has an unquestionable right to punish, when it only commands or defends those things that are conformable to the end pro- posed by man in his association. But, on the other hand, the law has not icquired the right to punish him, if it las failed to present to him the motives necessary to have an influence over his will ; it has not the right to coerce him, f the negligence of society has deprived nim of the means of subsisting, of exercising his talents, of exerting his 106 OF FATALISM. industry, and of labouring for its wel- fare. It is unjust, when it punishes those to whom it has neither given an education, nor honest principles ; whom it has not enabled to contract habits necessary to the maintenance of society : it is unjust, when it punishes them for faults which the wants of their nature, or the constitution of society has ren- dered necessary to them: it is unjust and irrational, whenever it chastises them for having followed those pro- pensities which example, which public opinion, which the institutions, which society itself conspires to give them. In short, the law is defective when it does not proportion the punishment to the real evil which society has sustained. The last degree of injustice and folly is, when society is so blinded as to inflict punishment on those citizens who have served it usefully. Thus penahlaws in exhibiting ter- rifying objects to man who must be supposed susceptible of fear, present him with motives calculated to have an influence over his will. The idea of pain, the privation of liberty, the fear of death, are, to a being well constituted and in the full enjoyment of his faculties, very puissant obstacles that strongly oppose themselves to the impulse of his unruly desires : when these do not co- erce his will, when they fail to arrest his progress, he is an irrational being, a madman, a being badly organized, against whom society has the right to guaranty itself and to take measures for its own security. Madness is, A-ithout doubt, an involuntary and a necessary state ; nevertheless, no one feels it unjust to deprive the insane of their liberty, although their actions can only be imputed to the derangement of their brain. The wicked are men whose brain is either constantly or transitorily disturbed; still they must be punished by reason of the evil they commit; they must always be placed in the impossibility of injuring society ; if no hope remains of bringing them back to a reasonable conduct, and to adopt a mode of action conformable to the great end of association, they must be for ever excluded its benefits. It will not be requisite to examine here how far the punishments, which society inflicts upon those who offend against it, may be reasonably carried. Reason should seem to indicate, that the law ought to show to the necessaiy crimes of man all the indulgence that is compatible with the conservation of society. The system of fatalism, as we have seen, does not leave crime unpunished ; but it is at least calculated to moderate the barbarity with which a number of nations punish the victims to their anger. This cruelty becomes still more absurd Avhen experience has shown its inutility : the habit of wit- nessing ferocious punishments, famil- iarizes criminals with the idea. If it be true that society possesses the right of taking away the life of its members; if it be really a fact that the death of a criminal, thenceforth useless, can be advantageous for society, (which it will be necessary to examine.) humanity at least exacts, that this death should not be accompanied with useless tor- tures with which laws too frequently seem to delight in overwhelming their victim. This cruelty defeats its own end, as it only serves to make the culprit, who is immolated to the public vengeance, suffer without any advan- tage to society : it moves the compassion of the spectator, and interests him in favour of the miserable offender who groans under its weight: it impresses nothing upon the wicked ; Avhilst the sight of those cruelties destined for himself but too frequently renders him more ferocious, more cruel, and more the enemy of his associates : if the example of death were less frequent, even without being accompanied with tortures, it would be more efficacious.* * The greater number of criminals only look upou death as a bad quarter of an hour. A thief neeing one of his comrades display a want of firmness under the punishment, said to him: " Is not this what I hare often told you, that in our business we have one eril more than the rest of mankind?" Robberies are daily committed even at the foot of the scaffolds where criminals are punished: In those nations, where the penalty of death is so lightly inflicted, has sufficient attention been paid to the fact, that society is yearly deprived of a great number of individuals who would be able to render it very useful service, if made to work, and thus indemnify the com- munity for the injuries they have committed? The facility with which the lives of men are taken away, proves the tyranny and incapa- city of legislators : they find it a much shorter road to destroy the citizens, than to seek aftef the means to render them better. OF FATALISM. What shall be said for the unju. cruelty of some nations, in which th law, that ought to have for its objec the advantage of the whole, appears t be made only for the security of th most powerful ; in which punishment the most disproportionate to the crime unmercifully take away the lives o men, whom the most urgent necessit has obliged to become criminal ? It i thus, that in a great number of civilize nations, the life of the citizen is place, in the same scales with money ; tha the unhappy wretch, who is perisnint. from hunger and misery, is put to deatl for having taken a pitiiul portion of tht superfluity of another whom he beholds rolling in abundance ? It is this, tha m many otherwise very enlightenec societies, is called justice, or making the punishment commensurate with the crime. This dreadful iniquity becomes ye more crying, when the laws decree the most cruel tortures for crimes to which the most irrational customs give birth, which bad institutions multiply. Man, as it cannot be too frequently repeated, is so prone to evil, only because every thing appears to urge him on to the commission, by too frequently showing him vice triumphant : his education is void in most states ; he receives from society no other principles, save those of an unintelligible religion, which make but a feeble barrier against his propensities : in vain the law cries out to him : " abstain from the goods of thy neighbour;" his wants, more powerful, loudly declare to him that he must live at the expense of a society who has done nothing for him, and who con- demns him to groan in misery and in indigence ; frequently deprived of the common necessaries, he compensates himself by theft, and by assassination; he becomes a plunderer by profession, a murderer by trade, and seeks, at the risk of his life, to satisfy those wants, whether real or imaginary, to which every thing around him conspires to give birth. Deprived of education, he has not been taught to restrain the fury of his temperament. Without ideas of decency, destitute of the true principles of honour, he engages in criminal pur- suits that injure his country, which has been to him nothing more than a step- 107 mother. In the paroxysm of his rage he only sees the gibbet that awaits him; his unruly desires have become too potent ; they have given an invete- racy to his habits which preclude him from changing them ; laziness has made him torpid; despair has rendered him blind ; he rushes on to death ; and society punishes him rigorously for those fatal and necessary dispositions, which it has itself engendered in his heart, or which at least it has not taken the pains seasonably to root out and to oppose by motives calculated to give him honest principles. Thus society frequently punishes those propensities of which it is itself the author, or which its negligence has suffered to spring up in the mind of man : it acts like those unjust fathers, who chastise their chil- dren for vices which they have them- selves made them contract. However unjust and unreasonable this conduct may be, or appear to be, it is not the less necessary : society, such as it is, whatever may be its cor- ruption, whatever vices may pervade its institutions, like every thing else in nature, tends to subsist and to conserve itself: in consequence it is obliged to junish those excesses which its own vicious constitution has produced : in despite of its peculiar prejudices and vices, it feels cogently that its own mmediate security demands, that it should destroy the conspiracies of those ivho make war against its tranquillity: f these, hurried on by necessary pro- )ensities, disturb its repose and injure ts interests, this following the natural aw, which obliges it to labour to its awn peculiar conservation, removes hem out of its road, and punishes hem with more or less rigour, accord- ng to the objects to which it attaches he greatest importance, or which it upposes best suited to further its own eculiar welfare : without doubt it de- eives itself frequently, but it deceives tself necessarily, for want of the know- edge calculated to. enlighten it with egard to its true interests, or for want f those, who regulate its movements, ossessing proper vigilance, suitable dents, and the requisite virtue. From his it will appear, that the injustice f a society badly constituted, and linded by its prejudices, is as neces- 109 OF FATALISM. sary as the crimes of those by whom it is hostily attacked and distracted.* The body politic, when in a state of insanity, cannot act more consistently with reason than one of its members whose brain is disturbed by madness. It will still be said that these max- ims, by submitting every thing to ne- cessity, must confound, or even de- stroy, the notions man forms of justice and injustice, of good and evil, of merit and demerit. I deny it: although man, in every thing he does, acts neces- sarily, his actions are good, just, and meritorious, every time they tend to the real utility of his fellows, and of the society of which he makes a part : they *re, of necessity, distinguished from *hose which are really prejudicial to he welfare of his associates. Society >s just, good, and worthy our reverence, tvhen it procures for all its members 'heir physical wants, affords them pro- tection, secures their liberty, and puts them in possession of their natural rights. It is in this that consists all the happiness of which the social com- pact is susceptible. Society is unjust, and unworthy our esteem, when it is partial to a few, and cruel to the great- er number: it is then that it multi- plies its enemies, and obliges them to revenge themselves by criminal actions which it is under the necessity to pun- ish. It is not upon the caprices of political society that depend the true notions of justice and injustice, the right ideas of moral good and evil, a just appreciation of merit and demerit; it is upon utility upon the necessity uf things which always forces man to feel that there exists a mode of act- ing which he is obliged to venerate and approve, either in his fellows or in society : whilst there is another mode which his nature makes him hate, which his feelings compel him to con- demn. It is upon his own peculiar essence that man founds his ideas of pleasure and of pain, of right and of wrong, of vice and of virtue : the only difference between these is, that pleas- ure and pain make them instantane- * A society punishing excesses to which it has itself given birth, may be compared to a man attacked with the lousy disorder, who is obliged to kill the insects, although it is his own diseased constitution which every mo- ment produces them. ously felt in hi.s brain : whilst the ad- vantages that accrue to him from jus- tice and virtue, frequently do not dis- play themselves but after a lon^ train of reflections, and after multiplied ex- periences, which many, either from a defect in their conformation or from the peculiarity of the circumstances under which they are placed, are prevented from making, or, at least, from making correctly. By a necessary consequence of this truism, the system of fatalism, although it has frequently been so accused, does not tend to encourage man in crime, and to make remorse vanish from his mind. His propensities are to be as- cribed to his nature ; the use he makes of his passions depends upon his habits upon his opinions, upon the ideas he has received in his education, and upon the examples held forth by the society in which he lives. These things are what necessarily decide his conduct. Thus when his temperament renders him susceptible of strong passions, he is violent in his desires, whatever may be his speculations. Remorse is the painful sentiment excited in him by grief caused either by the immediate or probable future effect of his passions : if these effects were always useful to him, he would not experience remorse ; but, as soon as he is assured that his actions render him hateful or contemptible ; or as soon as he fears he shall be punished in some mode or other, he becomes rest- less and discontented with himself: he reproaches himself with his own con- duct; he feels ashamed; he fears the judgment of those beings whose affec- tion he has learned to esteem ; in whose good will he finds his own com- fort deeply interested. His experience proves to him, that the wicked man is odious to all those upon whom his ac- tions have any influence : if these ac- tions are concealed at the moment, he knows it very rarely happens they remain so forever. The smallest re- flection convinces him, that there is nc wicked man who is not ashamed of his own conduct; who is truly con- tented with himself; who does not envy the condition of the good man ; who is not obliged to acknowledge, that he has paid very dearly for those advantages he is never able to enjoy OP FATALISM. tvithout making the most bitter re- proaches against himself: then he feeL ashamed, despises himself, hates him- self, his conscience becomes alarmed remorse follows in its train. To be convinced of the truth of this principle it is only requisite to cast our eyes or the extreme precautions that tyrants and villains, who are otherwise suffi- ciently powerful not to dread the pun- ishment of man, take to prevent expo- sure ; to what lengths they push their cruelties against some, to what mean- ness they stoop to others, of those who are able to hold them up to public scorn. Have they not then a con- sciousness of their own iniquities ? Do they not know, that they are hateful and contemptible ? Have they not re- morse ? Is their condition happy ? Per- sons well brought up acquire these sentiments in their education; which are either strengthened or enfeebled by public opinion, by habit, by the ex- amples set before them. In a depraved society, remorse, either does not exist, or presently disappears : because in all his actions, it is ever the judgment of his fellow man that man is obliged necessarily to regard. He never feels either shame or remorse for actions he sees approved, that are practised by all the world. Under corrupt governments, venal souls, avaricious beings, merce- nary individuals, do not blush, either at meanness, robbery, or rapine, when it is authorized by example : in licen- tious nations no one blushes at adul- tery; in superstitious countries, man does not blush to assassinate his fel- low for his opinions. It will be obvi- ous, therefore, that his remorse, as well as the ideas, whether right or wronw, which man has of decency, virtue, justice, &c. are the necessary conse- quence of his temperament, modified by the society in which he lives : as- sassins and thieves, when they live only among themselves, have neither shame nor remorse. Thus, I repeat, all the actions of man, are necessary; those which are always useful, which constantly co'n- tribute to the real, tend to the perma- nent happiness of his species, are call- ed virtues, and are necessarily pleas- ing to all who experience their influ- enceat least, if their passions or false opinions do not oblige them to judge 109 in that manner which is but little ac- cordant with the nature of things: each man acts, each individual judges necessarily according to his OAvn pecu- liar mode of existence, and after the ideas, whether true or false, which he has formed with regard to his happi- ness. There are necessary actions, which man is obliged to approve ; there are others, that in despite of him- self, he is compelled to censure, of which the idea generates shame, when his reflection permits him to contem- plate them under the same point of view that they are regarded by his as- sociates. The virtuous man and the wicked act from motives equally ne- cessary ; they differ simply in their or- ganization, and in the ideas they form to themselves of happiness : we love the one, necessarily, we detest the other from the same necessity. The law of his nature which wills that a sensible being shall constantly labour to preserve himself, has not left to man the power to choose, or the free agency to prefer pain to pleasure, vice to util- ity, crime to virtue. It is then the es- sence of man himself, that obliges him to discriminate those actions which are advantageous to him, from those which are prejudicial. This distinction subsists even in the most corrupt societies, in Avhich the ideas of virtue, although completely effaced from their conduct, remain the same in their mind. Let us suppose a man, who had decidedly determined for villanv, who should say to himself: " It is folly to be virtuous in a society that is depraved, in a community that is debauched." Let us suppose also that he has sufficient address and good for- tune to escape censure or punishment during a long series of years ; I say, that despite of all these circumstances, ap- parently so advantageous for himself, such a man has neither been happy nor contented with his own conduct. He has been in continual agonies ; ever at war with his own actions ; in a state af constant agitation. How much pain, [low much anxiety, has he not endured in this perpetual conflict with himself? how many precautions, what excessive labour, what endless solicitude, has h? not been compelled to employ in thi- continued struggle ; how many embar- rassments, how many cares, has he not OF FATALISM. experienced in this eternal wrestling with his associates, whose penetration he dreads ? Demand" of him what he thinks of himself, he will shrink from the question. Approach the bedside of this villain at the moment he is dying, ask him -if he would be willing to recommence, at the same price, a life of similar agitation ? If he is in- genuous, he will avow that he has tast- ed neither repose nor happiness ; that each crime filled him with inquietude ; that reflection prevented him from sleeping ; that the world has been to him only one continued scene of alarm and an everlasting anxiety of mind ; that to live peaceably upon bread and water, appears to him to be a much, happier, a more easy condition, than to possess riches, credit, reputation, hon- ours, on the same terms that he has him- self acquired them. If this villain, mau- gre all his success, finds his condition so deplorable, what must be thought of the feelings of those who have neither the same resources, nor the same ad- vantages, to succeed in their criminal projects? Thus the system of necessity, is a truth not only founded upon certain experience, but, again, it establishes morals upon an immoveable basis. Far from sapping the foundations of virtue, it points out its necessity ; it clearly shows the invariable sentiments it must excite sentiments so necessary, so strong, that all the prejudices and all the vices of man's institutions, have never been able entirely to eradicate them from his mind. When he mis- takes the advantages of virtue, it ought to be ascribed to the errours that are infused into him ; to the irrationality of his institutions. All his- wander- ings are the fatal and necessary conse- quences of errour and of prejudices which have identified themselves with his existence. Let it not therefore any longer be imputed to his nature that he has become wicked, but to those bane- ful opinions he has imbibed with his mothers milk which have rendered him ambitious, avaricious, envious, haughtv. arrogant, debauched, intole- rant, obstinate, prejudiced, incommodi- ous to his fellows, and mischievous to himself. It is education that carries into his system the germ of those vices, which necessarily torment him during the whole course of his life. Fatalism is reproached with dis- couraging man, damping the ardour of his soul, plunging him into apathy, and with destroying the bonds that should connect him with society. Its oppo- nents say : " If every thing is necessary, we must let things go on, and not be disturbed at any thing." But does it depend on man to be sensible or not? Is he master of feeling, or not feeling pain ? If nature has endowed him with a humane and tender soul, is it possible he should not interest himself in a very lively manner in the welfare of beings whom he knows are necessary to his own peculiar happiness ? His feelings are necessary; they depend on his own peculiar nature, cultivated by education. His imagination, prompt to concern itself with the felicity of his race, causes his heart to be oppressed at the sight of those evils his fellow creature is obliged to endure : makes his soul tremble in the contemplation of the misery arising from the despotism that crushes him ; from the superstition that leads him astray ; from the pas- sions that distract him ; from the follies that are perpetually ranking him in a state of warfare against his neighbour. Although he knows that death is the fatal and necessary period to the form of all beings, his soul is not affected in a less lively manner at the loss of a beloved wife at ihe demise of a child calculated to console his old age at the final separation from an esteemed friend, who had become dear to his heart. Although he is not ignorant that it is the essence of fire to burn, he does not believe he is dispensed from using his utmost efforts to arrest the progress of a conflagration. Although he is intimately convinced that the evils to which he is a witness are the necessary consequence of primitive errours with which his fellow citizens are imbued, yet he feels he ought to display truth to them, (if nature has given him the necessary courage,) under the conviction that if they listen to it, it will bv degrees become a cer- tain remedy for their sufferings that it will produce those necessary effects which it is of its essence to operate. If the speculations of man modify OF FATALISM. his conduct, if they change his terr perament, he ought not to doubt tha the system of necessity would have th most advantageous influence over him not only is it suitable to calm the greate part of his inquietude, but it will als contribute to inspire him with a usefu submission, a rational resignation to th decrees of a destiny, with which hi too great sensioilitv frequently cause him to be overwhelmed. This happ apathy without doubt would be desirabl to those whose souls, too tender to broo the inequalities of life, frequently rende them the deplorable sport of their fate or whose organs, too weak to mak< resistance to the buffetings of fortune incessantly expose them to be dashec in pieces under the rude blows of ad versity. But, of all the important advantages the human race would be enabled^to derive from the doctrine of fatalism if man was to apply it to his conduct none would be of greater magnitude none of more happy consequence, none that would more efficaciously corrobo- rate his happiness, than that general indulgence, that universal toleration, that must necessarily spring from the opinion that all is necessary. In con- sequence of the adoption of this prin- ciple, the fatalist, if he had a sensible soul, would commiserate the prejudices of his fellow man, would lament over his wanderings, would seek to unde- ceive him, without ever irritating him- self against his weakness without ever insulting his misery. Indeed, what right have we to hate or despise man for his opinions? His ignorance, his prejudices, his imbecility, his vices, his passions, his weakness, are they not the inevitable consequence of vicious institutions ? Is he not sufficiently pun- ished by the multitude of evils that afflict him on every side ? Those despots who crush him with an iron sceptre, are they not continual victims to their own peculiar restlessness, and eternal slaves to their suspicions ? Is there one wicked individual who enjoys a pure, an un- mixed, a real happiness ? Do not nations unceasingly suffer from their follies? Are they not the incessant dupes to their prejudices ? Is not the ignorance of chiefs, the ill-will they bear to rea- son, the hatred they have for truth, punished by the imbecility of their citi- 111 zens, and by the ruin of the states they govern? In short, the fatalist would grieve to witness necessity each moment exercising its severe decrees upon mor- tals who are ignorant of its power, or who feel its castigation, without being willing to acknowledge the hand from whence it proceeds ; he will perceive, that ignorance is necessary, that credu- lity is the necessary result "of ignorance, that slavery and bondage are necessary consequences of ignorant credulity ; that corruption of manners springs necessarily from slavery ; that the miseries of society and of its members, are the necessary offspring of this cor- ruption. The fatalist, in consequence of these ideas, will neither be a gloomy mis- anthrope, nor a dangerous citizen. He will pardon in his brethren those wan- derings which their nature vitiated by a thousand causes, has rendered neces- sary; he will offer them consolation; he will endeavour to inspire them with courage ; he will be sedulous to unde- ceive them in their idle notions; in their chimerical ideas ; but he will never show them that rancorous ani- mosity which is more suitable to make them revolt from his doctrines than to attract them to reason. He will not disturb the repose of society ; he will not raise the people to insurrection against the sovereign authority ; on the contrary, he will feel that the miserable blindness and perverseness of so many conductors of the people, are the neces- sary consequence of that flattery admin- stered to them in their infancy ; of the depraved malice of those who surround hem, and who wickedly corrupt them, nat they may profit by their folly : in hort, that these things are the inevi- able effect of that profound ignorance )f their true interest, in which every hing strives to keep them. The fatalist has no right to be vain f his peculiar talents or of his virtues : e knows that these qualities are only lie consequence of his natural organiza- ion, modified by circumstances that ave in nowise depended upon himself. He will neither have hatred nor feel pntempt for those whom nature and ircumstances have not favoured in a imilar manner. It is the fatalist who ught to be humble and modest from principle : is he not obliged to acknow 112 OF FATALISM. ledge that he possesses nothing that he has not previously received ? In tact, every thing will conduct to indulgence the fatalist whom experience has convinced of the necessity of things. He will see with pain that it is the essence of a society badly constituted, unwisely governed, enslaved to preju- dice, attached to unreasonable customs, submitted to irrational laws, degraded under despotism, corrupted by luxury, inebriated with false opinions, to be filled with trifling members ; to be composed of vicious citizens ; to be made up of cringing slaves, who are proud of their chains ; of ambitious men, without ideas of true glory ; of misers and prodigals ; of fanatics and libertines ! Convinced of the necessary connexion of things, he will not be surprised to see that the supineness of their chiefs carries discouragement into their country ; or that the influence of their governors stirs up bloody wars by which it is depopulated ; causes useless expenditures that empoverish it ; and that all these excesses united is the reason why so many nations contain only men wanting happiness, who are devoid of morals, destitute of virtue. In all this, he will contemplate nothing more than the necessary action and reaction of physics upon morals, of morals upon physics. In short, all who acknowledge fatality, will remain persuaded that a nation badly governed is a soil very abundant in poisonous plants ; that these have such a plentiful growth as to crowd each other and choke themselves. It is in a country cultivated by the hands of a Lycurgus, that he will witness the production of intrepid citizens, of noble-minded indi- viduals, of disinterested men, who are strangers to irregular pleasures. In a country cultivated by a Tiberius, he will find nothing but villains, with depraved hearts, men with mean con- temptible souls, despicable informers, and execrable traitors. It is the soil, it is the circumstances in which man finds himself placed, that renders him either a useful object or a prejudicial being: the wise man avoids the one, as he would those dangerous reptiles whose nature it is to sting and com- municate their deadly venom; he at- taches himself to the other, esteems him, loves him, as he does those deli- cious fruits, with whose rich maturity his palaffe is pleasantly gratified, and with whose cooling juices he finds himself agreeably refreshed : he sees the wicked without anger ; he cherishes the good with pleasure ; he delights in the bountiful ; he knows full well that the tree which is languishing without culture in the arid, sandy desert ; that is stunted for want of attention; leafless for want of moisture ; that has grown crooked from neglect ^ become barren from want of loam ; would perhaps have expanded far and wide its verdant boughs, brought forth delectable fruit, afforded an umbrageous refreshing shel- ter, if its seed had been fortunately sown in a more fertile soil, or if it had experienced the fostering cares of a skilful cultivator. Let it not then be said, that it is degrading man to reduce his functions to a pure mechanism ; that it is shame- fully to undervalue him, to compare him to a tree to an abject vegetation. The philosopher devoid of prejudice, does not understand this language invented by those who are ignorant of what con- stitutes the true dignity of man. A tree is an object which, in its station, joins the useful with the agreeable ; it merits our approbation when it produces sweet and pleasant fruit, and when it affords a favourable shade. All machines are precious, whenever they are truly useful, and when they faithfully perform the functions for which they are designed. Yes, I speak it with courage, the honest man, when he has talents and possesses virtue, is, for the beings of his species, a tree that furnishes them with delicious fruit, and affords them refreshing shelter : the honest man is a machine, of which the springs are adapted to fulfil its func- tions in a manner that must gratify the expectation of all his fellows. No, I should not blush to be a machine of this sort ; and my heart would leap with joy if I could foresee that the fruit of my reflections would one day be useful and consoling to my fellow man. Is not nature herself a vast machine, of which the human species is but a very feeble spring? I see nothing con- temptible either in her or in her pro- ductions : all the beings who come out of her hands are good, are noble, are sublime, whenever they co-operate to the production of order; to the main- OF FATALISM. 113 tenance of harmony in the sphere where they must act. Oi'Avhatevef nature the soul may be, whether mortal or immor- tal ; whether it be regarded as a spirit, or whether it be looked upon as a por- tion of the body ; it will be found noble, great, and sublime, in a Socrates, in an Aristides, in a Cato : it will be thought abject, it will be viewed as despicable and corrupt in a Claudius, in a Sejanus, in a Nero : its energies will be admired in a Shakspeare, in a Corneille, in a Newton, in a Montesquieu: its base- ness will be lamented when we behold mean men, who flatter tyranny, or who servilely cringe at the foot of super- stition. All that has been said in the course of this work, proves clearly that every thing is necessary ; that every thing is always in order relatively to nature, where all beings do nothing more than follow the laws that are imposed on their respective classes. It is part of her plan, that certai* portions of the earth shall bring forth delicious fruits, whilst others shall only furnish bram- bles and noxious vegetables : she has been willing that some societies should produce wise men and great heroes , that others should only give birth to contemptible men, without energy, and destitute of virtue. Winds, tempests, hurricanes, volcanoes, wars, plagues, famine, diseases, death, are as necessary to her eternal march, as the beneficent heat of the sun, the serenity of the atmosphere, the gentle showers of spring, plentiful years, peace, health, harmony, life : vice and virtue, dark- ness and light, ignorance and science, are equally necessary* the one are not benefits, the other are not evils, except for those beings whose happiness they influence, by either favouring or de- ranging their peculiar mode of existence. The whole cannot be miserable, but it may contain unhappy individuals. Nature, then, distributes with the same hand that which is called order, and that which is called disorder ; that which is called pleasure, and that which is called pain; in short, she diffuses, by the necessity of her exist- ence, good and evil, in the world we inhabit. Let not man therefore either arraign her bounty, or tax her AA'ith malice ; let him not imagine that his vociferation.? or his supplications, can No. IV. 15 ever arrest her colossal power, always acting after immutable laws. Let him submit silently to his condition; and when he suffers, let him not seek a remedy by recurring to chimeras that his own distempered imagination has created ; let him draw from the stores of nature herself the remedies which she offers for the evil she brings upon him : if she send him diseases, let him search in her bosom for those salutary productions to which she has given birth. If she gives him errours, she also furnishes him Avith experience and truth to counteract and destroy their fatal effects. If she permits man to groan under the pressure of his vices, beneath the load of his follies, she also shows him in virtue a sure remedy for his infirmities: if the evils that some societies experience are necessary, when they shall have become too incommo- dious, they will be irresistibly obliged to search for those remedies which nature will always point out to them. If this nature has rendered existence insup- portable to some unfortunate beings whom she may appear to have selected for her victims, still death is a door that will surely be opened to tlmm, and will deliver them from their mis- fortunes, although they may be deemed impossible of cure. Let not man, then, accuse nature with being inexorable to him ; since there does not exist an evil for which she has not furnished the remedy to those who have the courage to seek and apply it. Nature follows general and necessary laws in all her opera- tions; physical and moral evil are not to be ascribed to her want of kindness, but to the necessity of things. Physical calamity is the derangement produced in man's organs by physical causes which he sees act: moral evil is the derangement produced in him by physi- cal causes, of which the action is" to him a secret. These causes always terminate by producing sensible effects, which are capable of striking his senses ; neither the thoughts nor the will of man ever show themselves hut by the marked effects they produce either in himself or upon those beings Avhoni nature has rendered susceptible of feeling their impulse. He suffers, because it is of the essence of some beings to derange the economy of his machine ; lie enjoys 114 OF FATALISM. because the properties of some beings are analogous to his own mode of ! existence ; he is born, because it is of the nature of some matter to combine itself under a determinate form ; he lives, he acts, he thinks, because it is of the essence of certain combinations to maintain themselves in existence for a season ; at length he dies, because a necessary law prescribes that all the combinations which are formed, shall either be destroyed or dissolve them- selves. From all this it results, that nature is impartial to all its productions; she submits man, like all other beings, to those eternal laws from which she has not been able to exempt herself: if she was to suspend these laws, even for an instant, from that moment dis- order would reign in her system, and her harmony would be disturbed. Those who wish to study nature, must take experience for their guide ; this, and this only, can enable them to dive into her secrets, and to unravel by degrees the frequently imperceptible woof of those slender causes of which she avails herself to operate the greatest phenomena : by the aid of experience, ma^ often discovers in her new proper- ties, perceives modes of action entirely unknown to the ages which have pre- ceded him ; those effects which his grandfathers contemplated as marvel- lous, which they regarded as super- natural efforts, looked upon as miracles, have become familiar to him in the present day ; are at this moment con- templated as simple and natural conse- quences of which he comprehends the mechanism and the cause. Man, in fathoming nature, has arrived at dis- covering the true causes of earthquakes, of the periodical motion of the sea, of subterraneous conflagrations, of me- teors, of the electrical fluid, the whole of which were considered by his ances- tors, and are still so by the ignorant, as indubitable signs of Heaven's wrath. His posterity, in following up, in recti- fying the experience already made, will go still farther, and discover effects and causes which are totally veiled from present eyes. The united efforts of the human species, will one day perhaps penetrate even into the sanctuary of nature, and throw into light many of those mysteries, which, up to the pre- sent time, she seems to have refused to all his researches. In contemplating man under his true aspect; in quitting authority to follow experience ; in laying aside errour to consult reason ; in submitting every thing to physical laws, from which his imagination has vainly exerted its ut- most power to withdraw them ; it will be found, that the phenomena of the moral world follow exactly the same general rules as those of the physical, and that the greater part of those asto- nishing effects, which ignorance aided by his prejudices, makes him consider as inexplicable and as wonderful, are natural consequences flowing from sim- ple causes. He will find, that the erup- tion of a volcano and the birth of a Tamerlane are to nature the same thing ; in recurring to the primitive causes of those striking events which he beholds with consternation, of those terrible revolutions, those frightful convulsions that distract mankind, lay Avaste the fairest works of nature, and ravage nations, he will find the wills that compassed the most surprising changes, that operated the most extensive altera- tions in the state of things, were moved by physical causes, whose exility made him treat them as contemptible, and as utterly incapable to give birth to the phenomena, whose magnitude strikes him with awe and amazement. If man was to judge of causes by their effects, there would be no small causes in the universe. In a nature where every thing is connected ; where every thing acts and reacts, moves and changes, composes .and decomposes. forms and destroys, there is not an atom which does not play an important and necessary part; there is not an imperceptible particle, however minute, which, placed in convenient circum- stances, does not operate the most prodigious effects. If man was in a capacity to follow the eternal chain, to pursue the concatenated links that connect with their causes all the effects he witnesses, without losing sight of any one of its rings, if he could unravel the ends of those insensible threads that give impulse to the thoughts, decision to the will, directic ,-n t.> the passions of those men who nre called mighty, according to their actions ; he OF FATALISM. would find that they are true atoms which nature employs to move the moral world ; that it is the unexpected but necessary junction of these indis- cernible particles of matter, it is their aggregation, their combination, their proportion, their fermentation, which modifying the individual by degrees, in despite of himself, and frequently without his own knowledge, make him think, will and act in a determinate but necessary mode. If the will and the actions of this individual have an influence over a great number of other men, here is the moral world in a state of the greatest combustion. Too much acrimony in the bile of a fanatic, blood too much inflamed in the heart of a conqueror, a painful indigestion in the stomach of a monarch, a Avhim that passes in the mind of a woman, are j sometimes causes sufficient to bring on war, to send millions of men to the slaughter, to root out an entire people, i to overthrow walls, to reduce cities into ! ashes, to plunge nations into slavery, j to put a whole people into mourning, ! to breed famine in a land, to engender l pestilence, to propagate calamity, to extend misery, to spread desolation far and wide upon the surface of our globe, through a long series of ages. The dominant passion of an indi- vidual of the human species, when it disposes of the passions of many others, arrives at combining their will, at uniting their efforts, and thus decides the condition of man. It is after this manner that an ambitious, crafty, and voluptuous Arab gave to his country men an impulse, of which the effect was the subjugation and desolation of vast countries in Asia, in Africa, and in Europe; whose consequences were suf- ficiently potential to give a novel system of religion to millions of human beings ; to overturn the altars of their former gods ; in short, to alter the opinions, to change the customs of a considerable portion of the population of the earth. But in examining the primitive sources of this strange revolution, what were the concealed causes that had an influ- ence over this man, that excited his peculiar passions, that modified his ! temperament ? What was the matter ' from the combination of which resulted a crafty, ambitious, enthusiastic, and ! eloquent man ; iu short, a personage | 115 competent to impose on his fellow creatures, and capable of making them concur in his views. They were th prevent their ever having the right or power of enslav- ing and oppressing nations according to the whim or caprice of the moment. Therefore, a good political constitution, founded upon natural rights and a sound education, is the only efficient check to the malpractice* of *ho rulers of nations. IMMORTALITY OF THE SOUL. 129 shall make on the features of a judge that is either hidden from his vievv, o that he only contemplates at a distance The tyrant, who with dry eyes can hea the cries of the distressed, who with callous heart can behold the tears of a whole people of whose misery he is th( cause, will not see the angry counte iiauce of a more powerful master When a haughty, arrogant monarch pretends to be 'accountable for his actions to the Divinity alone, it is because he fears his nation more than he does his God. On the other hand, does not religion itself annihilate the effects of those fears which it announces as salutary ? Does it not furnish its disciples with the means of extricating themselves from the punishments with which it has so frequently menaced them? Does it not tell them, that a steril repentance will, even at the movaent of death, dis- arm the celestial wrath; that it will purify the filthy souls of sinners ? Do not even the priests, in some super- stitions, arrogate to themselves the right of remitting to the dying, the punishment due to the crimes com- mitted during the course of a disorderly life ? In short, do not the most perverse men, encouraged in iniquity, debauchery, and crime, reckon, even to the last mo- ment, upon the aid of a religion that promises them the infallible means of reconciling themselves to the Divinity whom they have irritated, and of avoid- ing his rigorous punishments 1 In consequence of these notions, so favourable to the wicked, so suitable to tranquillize their fears, we see that the hope of an easy expiation, far from correcting man, engages him to persist until death in the most crying disorders". Indeed, in despite of the numberless advantages which he is assured Hows from the doctrine of a life to come, in defiance of its pretended efficacy to repress the passions of men, do not the priests themselves, although so inter- ested in the maintenance of this system, everyday complain of its insufficiency ? They acknowledge, that mortals, whom from their infancy they have imbued \vith these ideas, 'are not less hurried forward by their evil propensities, less sunk in the vortex of dissipation, le.-s the slave< to their pleasures, less capti- vated by bad habits, less driven along No. V.-17 by the torrent of the world, less seduced by their present interest, which make them forget equally the recompense and the chastisement of a future exist- ence. In a word, the ministers of Heaven allow, that their disciples, for the greater part, conduct themselves in this world as if they had nothing either tp hope or to fear in another. But let it be supposed for a moment that the doctrine of eternal punishments was of some utility, and that it really restrained a small number of indi- viduals; what are these feeble advan- tages compared to the numberless evils that flow from it ? Against one timid man, whom this idea restrains, there are thousands upon whom it operates nothing; there are millions whom it makes irrational ; whom it renders savage persecutors ; whom it converts into useless and wicked fanatics ; there are millions whose mind it disturbs, and whom it diverts from their duties towards society ; there are an infinity whom it grievously afflicts and troubles, without producing any real good for their associates.* ' Many persons, convinced of the utility of the belief in another life, consider those who do not fall in with this doctrine as the enemies- of society. However, it will be found orr examination that the wisest and the most enlightened men of antiquity have believed, not only that the soul is material and perishes with the body, but also that they have attacked without hesitation and without subterfuge the opinion of future punishments. This senti- ment was not peculiar to the Epicureans, but was adopted by philosophers of all sects, by Pythagoreans, by Stoics, by Peripatetics, by Academics ; in short, by the most godly and he most virtuous' men of Greece and Rome. Pythagoras, according to Ovid, speaks thus : O Genus attonitum pelicJEc forrnirline Mortis, Quid stiga, quid tenebras, et nomina vaim tunetis Materiem vatuin, falsique pericula mundi 1 Timaeus of Locris, who was a Pythagorean; idmits that the doctrine of future punishments was fabulous, solely destined for the imbecility )f the uninformed, and but little calculated for hose who cultivate their reason. Aristotle expressly says, that, "Man has neither good to hope, nor evil to fear after eath. The Platonists, who made the sout immor- al, could not have any idea of future punish- lents, because the soul according to them vas a portion of the Divinity, which, after the issolution of the body, it returned to rejoin. *ow, a portion of the Divinity could not be ubject to suffer. Zeno, according to Cicero, supposed the oul to be an igneous substance, from whenc? 130 EDUCATION, MORALS, &c. CHAPTER XIV. Education, Morals, and the Laws, suffice to restrain Man. Of the Desire of Immor- tality. Of Suicide. IT is not then in an ideal world, existing no where but in the imagina- tion of man, that he must seek to collect motives calculated to make him act pro- perly in this ; it is in the visible world that will be found incitements to divert him from crime and to rouse him to virtue. It is in nature, in experience," lie concluded it destroyed itself. Zenoni Stoico animus ignis videtur. Si sit ignis, extinguetur; interibit cum reliquo corpore. This philosophical orator, who was of the sect of the Academics, is not always in accord with himself; however, on several occasions he treats openly as fables the torments of Hell, and looks upon death as the end of every thing for man. Vide r Pusculan., C. 38. Seneca is filled with passages which con- templatedeath as a state of total annihilation: Mors est non esse. Id quale sit jam scio ; hoc erit post me quod ante me fuit. Si quid in hac re tormenti est, necesse est et fuisse antequam prodiremus in lucem; atqui nullam sensimus tune vexationem. Speaking of the death of his brother, he says : Quid itaque eitis desi- derio maceror, qui aut beatus, aut nullus est ? But nothing can be more decisive than what he writes to Marcia to console him. (chap. 19.) Cogita nullis defunctum malis affici : ilia quae nobis inferos faciunt terribiles, fabulam esse : nullas imminere mortuis tenebras, nee carce- rem, nee flumina flagrantia igne, nee oblivi- qnis amnem, nee tribunalia, et reos et in ilia libertate tarn laxa iterum tyrannos : luserunt ista poetae et vanis nos agitavere terroribus. Mors omnium dolorum et solutio est et finis : ultra quam mala nostra non exeunt, quae nos in illam tranquilitatem, in qua antequam nasceremur, jacuimus, reponit. Here is also another conclusive passage from this philosopher, which is deserving of the attention of the reader : Si animus fortuita contempsit ; si deorum hominumque formidi- nem ejecit, et scit non multum ab homine timendurn, adeo nihil; si contemptor omnium quibus torquetur vita eo perductus est ut illi liqueat mortem nullius mali esse materiam, xnultorum finem. V. De Benejiciis, VII. \. Seneca, the tragedian, explains himself in ;ne same manner as the philosopher : Post mortem nihil est, ipsaque mors nihil. Velocis spatii meta novissima. Quaeris quo jaceas post obitum loco ? Quo non nata jacent. Mors individua est noxia corpori, Nee parcens animae. Troades. Epictetus has the same idea. In a passage reported by Arrian, he says : " But where are you going ? It cannot be to a place of suffering : you will only return to the place from whence you came ; you are about to be again peace- in truth, that he must search out reme- dies for the evils of his species, and for motives suitable to infu.-e into the human heart propensities truly useful for society. If attention has been paid to what bas been said in the course of this work, it will be seen, that above all it is education that will best furnish the true means of rectifying the wanderings of mankind. It is this that should scatter the seeds in his heart ; cultivate the tender shoots ; make a profitable use ably associated with the elements from whence you are derived. That which in yom|compo- sit ion is of the nature of fire, will return to the element of fire ; that which is of the nature of earth, will rejoin itself to the earth ; that which is air, will reunite itself with air ; that which is water, will resolve itself into water ; there is no Hell, no Acheron, no Cocytus, no Phlege- thon." See Arrian. in Epictet. lib. iii. cap. 13. In another place he says : " The hour of death approaches ; but do not aggravate your evil, nor render things worse than they are : repre- sent them to yourself under their true point of view. The time is come when the materials of which you are composed, go to resolve themselves into the elements from whence they were originally borrowed. What is there that is terrible or grievous in that? Is there any thing in the world, that perishes totally?" See Arrian. lib. iv. cap. 1. 1. The sage and pious Antoninus says : " He who fears death, either fears to be deprived of all feeling, or dreads to experience different sensations. If you lose all feeling, you will no longer be subject either to pain or to misery. If you are provided with other senses of'a different nature, you will become a creature of a different species." This great emperor further says: "that we must cxptct death with tranquillity, seeing that it is only a dis- solution of the elements of which each animal is composed." See the Moral Inflections of Marcus Antoninus, lib. ii. To the evidence of so many rent men of Pagan antiquity, may be joined that of the author of Ecclesiastes, who speaks of death and of the condition of the human soul, like an Epicurean ; he says : " For that which befalleth the sons of men befalleih beasts; even one thing befalleth them : as the one dieth, so dieth the other; yea, they have all one breath; so that a man hath no pre- eminence above a beast ; for all is vanity. All go unto one place; all are of the dust, and all turn to dust again." And further, " wherefore I perceive ; that there is nothing better, than that a man should rejoice in his own works; for that is his portion : for who shall bring him to see what shall be after him ?" In short, how can Christians reconcile the utility or the necessity of this doctrine with the fact, that the legislator of the Jews, inspired by the Divinity, remained silent on a subject that is said to be of so much importance ? of hi? dispositions ; turn to account those faculties which depend on his organization ; which should cherish the fire of his imagination, kindle it for useful objects ; damp it, or extinguish it lor others; in short, it is this which shoulJ make sensible souls contract habits that are advantageous for society and beneficial to the individual. Brought up in this manner, man would not have occasion for celestial punishments to teach him the value of virtue ; he would not need to behold burning gulfs of brimstone under his feet, to induce him To feel horrour for crime ; nature, with- out these fables, would teach him much better what he owes to himself, and the law would point out to him what he owes to the body politic of which he is a member. It is thus that edu- cation would form valuable citizens to the state ; the depositaries of power would distinguish those whom educa- tion should have thus formed, by reason of the advantages which they would procure for their country ; they would punish those who should be found injurious to it ; it would make the citi- zens see, that the promises of reward which education and morals held forth are by no means vain ; and that in a state well constituted, virtue is the true and only road to happiness ; talents the way to gain respect ; and that inutility and crime lead to contempt and mis- iortune. A just, enlightened, virtuous, and vio-i. lant government, who should honestly propose the public good, would have no occasion either for fables or for falsehoods to govern reasonable sub- jects; it would blush to make use of imposture to deceive citizens who instructed in their duties, would find' their interest in submitting to equitable laws; who would be capable of feelin^ the benefit these have the power of conferring on them; it would know, that public esteem has more power over men of elevated minds than the terrpur of the laws ; it would feel, that habit is sufficient to inspire them with horrour, even for those concealed crimes that escape the eyes of society ; it would understand, that the visible punishments ot this world impose much more on the ignorant than those of an uncertain and distant futurity : in short, it would ascer- tain that the sensible benefits within the EDUCATION, MORALS, &c. 131 compass of the sovereign power to dis- tribute, touch the imagination of mortals more keenly than those vague recom- penses which are held forth to them in a future existence. Man is almost every where so wicked so corrupt, so rebellious to reason, only because he is not governed according to his nature, nor properly instructed in her necessary laws : he is every where led with useless chimeras ; every where submitted to masters who neglect his instruction, or who only seek to deceive him. On the face of this globe we only see unjust sovereigns, enervated by luxury, corrupted by flattery, de- praved by licentiousness, made wicked by impunity, devoid of talents, without morals, destitute of virtue, and incapable of exerting any energy for the benefit ot the states they govern j they are con- sequently but little occupied with the welfare of their people, and indifferent to their duties, of Avhich indeed they are often ignorant. Stimulated by the desire of continually finding means to leed their insatiable ambition, they engage in useless, depopulating wars, and never occupy their mind with those objects which are the most important to the happiness of their nation: inter- ested in maintaining the received preju- dices, they never wish to consider the means of curing them : in short, de- prived themselves of that understanding which teaches man that it is his interest to be kind, just, and virtuous, they ordi- narily reward only those crimes which their imbecility makes them imagine as useful to them, and they generally pun- ish those virtues which' are opposed to their own imprudent passions. Under such masters, is it surprising that soc iety should be ravaged by perverse men WHO emulate each other in oppressing its members, in sacrificing its dearest interests. The state of society is a state 01 hostility of the sovereign against the wnole, of each of its members the one against the other.* Man is wicked, It must be observed I do not say here, like Hobbes, that the state of nature is a state oi war, but that men, by their nature, are either good nor wicked; in fact, man will be either good or bad, according as he is modified men are so ready to injure one another, it is mly because every thing conspires to give hem different interests. Each one, if I ma v say so, lives isolated in society, and their chiefs avail themselves of their divisions to subdue 132 EDUCATION, MORALS, &c. not because he is bora so, but because he is rendered so ; the great, the power- ful, crush with impunity the indigent and the unhappy ; these, at the risk of their lives, seek to retaliate the evil they have received : they attack either openly or in secret a country who to them is a stepmother, who gives all to some of her children, and deprives the others of every thing: they punish it for its partiality, and clearly show that the motives borrowed from a life here- after are impotent against the fury of those passions to which a corrupt administration has given birth in this life ; that the terrour of the punish- ments in this world are too feeble against necessity, against criminal ha- bits ; against a dangerous organization uncorrected by education. In all countries the morals of the people are neglected, and the govern- ment is occupied only with rendering them timid and miserable. Man is almost every where a slave ; it must then follow, of necessity, that he is base, interested, dissimulating, without honour ; in a word, that he has the vices of the state of which he is a citizen. Every where he is deceived, encouraged in ignorance, and prevented from cultivating his reason ; of course he must every where be stupid, irra- tional, and wicked ; every where he sees vice and crime applauded and honoured ;' thence he concludes vice to be a good ; virtue only a useless sacrifice of himself: every where he is miserable, therefore he injures his fellow men to relieve his own anguish : it is in vain to show him heaven, in order to restrain him; his views pre- sently descend again to the eaith, where he is willing to be happy at any price ; therefore the laws, which have neither provided for his instruction, for his morals, nor his happiness, menace him uselessly, and punish him for the un- just negligence of his legislators. If politics, more enlightened, did seriously occupy itself with the instruction and with the welfare of the people ; if laws were more equitable ; if each society, less partial, bestowed on its members the care, the education, and the assist- the whole. Divide et impera is the maxim that all bad governments follow by instinct. Tyrants would be badly off if they Jaad to rule over virtuous men onlv. ance which they have a right to expect if governments less covetous, and more vigilant, were sedulous to render their subjects more happy, there would not be seen such numbers of malefactors, of robbers, of murderers, who every where infest society ; they would no'* be obliged to destroy life, in order to punish a wickedness, which is com- monly ascribable to the vices of their own institutions : it would be unneces- sary to seek in another life for farvciful chimeras, which always prove abortive against the infuriate passions, and against the real wants of man. In short, if the people were better in- structed and more happy, politics would no longer be reduced to the exigency of deceiving them in order to restrain them; nor to destroy so many unfor- tunates for having procured necessaries at the expense of their hardhearted fellow citizens. When it shall be desired to enlighten man, let him always have truth laid before him. Instead of kindling his imagination by the idea of those pre- tended goods that a future state has in reserve for him, let him be solaced, let him be succoured ; or, at least, let him be permitted to enjoy the fruit of his labour; let not his substance be ravaged from him by cruel imposts ; let him not be discouraged from work, by finding all his labour inadequate to support his existence, let him not be driven into that idleness that will surely lead him on to crime : let him consider his pre- sent existence, without carrying his views to that which may attend him after his death : let hi> industry be excited ; let his talents be rewarded ; let him be rendered active, laborious., beneficent, and virtuous, in the world he inhabits ; let it be shown to him that his actions are capable of having an influence over his fellow men, but not on those imaginary beings located in an ideal world. Let him not be menaced with the tortures of a God when he shall be no more ; let him behold society armed against those who disturb its repose ; let him see the con- sequence of the hatred of hb associates; let him learn to feel the value of their affection ; let him be taught to esteem himself; let him understand, that to obtain the esteem of others he mast have virtue ; above all, that the virtue us EDUCATION, MORALS, &c. man in a well constituted society ha nothing to fear either from his fellow citizens or from the Gods. If it be desired to form honest courageous, industrious citizens, wh< may be useful to their country, le them beware of inspiring man from hi infancy with an ill-founded dread of death of amusing his imagination with marvellous fables of occupying hi mind with his destiny in a future life quite useless to be known, and which has nothing in common with his rea felicity. Let them speak of immortality to intrepid and noble souls ; let them show it as the price of their labours to energetic minds, who, springing forwa re beyond the boundaries of their actual existence, are little satisfied Avith elicit- ing the admiration and with gaining the love of their contemporaries, but are determined also to wrest the homage, to secure the affection of future races. Indeed, there is an immortality to which genius, talents, virtue, have a just right to pretend ; do not therefore let them censure or endeavour to stifle so noble a passion in man, which is founded upon his nature, and from which society gathers the most advantageous fruits. The idea of being buried in total oblivion ; of having nothing in common after his death, with the beings of his species ; of losing sll possibility of again having any influence over them, is a thought extremely painful to man ; it is above all afflicting to those who possess an ardent imagination. The desire of immortality, or of living in the memory of his fellow men, was always the passion of great souls ; it was the motive to the actions of all those who have played a great part on the earth, i Heroes, whether virtuous or criminal, philosophers as well as conquerors, men of genius, and men of talents, those sublime personages who have done honour to their species, as well as those illustrious villains who have debased and ravaged it, have had an eye to posterity in all their enter- prises, and have flattered themselves with the hope of acting upon the souls of men, even when they themselves should no longer exist. If man in general does not carry his views so far, j lie is at least sensible to the idea of seeing himself regenerated in his chil- ! dren, whom he knows are destined to 133 survive him, to transmit his name, to preserve his memory, and to represent him in society; it is for them that he rebuilds his cottage ; it is for them that he plants the tree which his eyes will never behold in its vigour;, it is that they may be happy that he labours. The sorrow Avhich imbitters the life of those rich men, frequently so useless to the world, when they have lost the hope of continuing their race, has its source in the fear of being entirely forgotten: they feel, that the useless man dies entirely. The idea that his name will be in the mouths of men ; the thought that it will be pronounced with tenderness, that it will be recol- lected with kindness, that it will excite in their hearts favourable sentiments, is an illusion that is useful and suitable to flatter even those who know that nothing will result from it. Man pleases himself with dreaming that he shall lave power; that he shall pass for something in the universe, even after the term of his human existence ; he lartakes by imagination in the projects, n the actions, in the discussions of future ages, and would be extremely mhappy if he believed himself entirely excluded from their society. The laws n all countries have entered into these news ; they have so far been willing o console their citizens for the neces- Jty of dying, by giving them the means )f exercising their will, even for a long ime after their death : this condescen- ion goes to that length, that the dead requently regulate the condition of the iving during a long series of years. Every thing serves to prove the desire n man of surviving himself. Pyra- nids, mausoleums, monuments, epi- aphs, all show that he is willing to rolong his existence, even beyond his ecease. He is not insensible to the udgment of posterity; it is for him le philosopher writes ; it is to astonish im that the monarch erects sumptuous difices, it is his praises that the great man already hears echo in his ears is to him that the virtuous citizen appeals from prejudiced or unjust con- temporaries. Happy chimera ! Sweet illusion! that realizes itself to ardent imaginations, and which is calculated to give birth to, and to nurture the enthusiasm of genius, courage, gran- deur of soul, and talent ; its influence EDUCATION, MORALS,! &c. 134 is sometimes able to restrain the ex- cesses of the most powerful men, who are frequently very much disquieted for the judgment of posterity, from a conviction that this will, sooner or later, avenge the living of the foul injustice which they have made them suffer. No man, therefore, can consent to be entirely effaced from the remembrance of his fellows; some men have not the temerity to place themselves above the judgment of the future human species, to degrade themselves in its eyes. Where is the being who is insensible |nious to the pleasure of exciting the tears of those who shall survive him ; of again acting upon their souls ; of once more occupying their thoughts ; of exercising upon them his power, even from the bottom of his grave ? Let, then, eternal silence be imposed upon those super- stitious and melancholy men who cen- sure a sentiment from which society derives so many real advantages; let not mankind listen to those passionless philosophers, who are willing to smother this great, this noble spring of his soul ; let him not be seduced by the sarcasms of those voluptuaries, who pretend to despise an immortality towards which they lack the power to set forward. The desire of pleasing posterity and of rendering his name agreeable to generations yet to come, is a laudable motive, when it causes him to undertake those things of which the utility may have an influence over men and nations who have not yet an existence. Let him not treat as irrational the enthu- siasm of those beneficent and mighty geniuses, whose keen eyes have fore- seen him even in their day ; who have occupied themselves of him for his welfare; who have desired his suffrage; who have written for him ; who have enriched him by their discoveries ; who have cured him of his errours. Let him render them the homage which they have expected at his hands; let him at least reverence their memory for the benefits he has derived from them ; let him treat their mouldering remains with respect for the pleasure he receives from their labours ; let him pay to their ashes a tribute of grateful recollection for the happiness they have been sedulous to procure for him. Let him sprinkle with his tears the urns of Socrates, of Phocion ; let him wash out the stain that their punishment, has made on the human species; let him expiate by his regret the Athenian ingratitude ; let him learn by their example to dread religious and political fanaticism ; let him fear to harass merit and virtue, in persecuting those who may happen to differ from him in his prejudices. Let him strew flowers over the tombs of a Homer, of a Tasso, of a Milton ; let him revere the immortal shades of those happy geniuses, whose harmo- lays excite in his soul the most tender sentiments; let him bless the memory of all those benefactors to the people, who were the delight of the human race ; let him adore the virtues of a Titus, of a Trajan, of an Antoninus, of a Julian ; let him merit, in his sphere, the eulogies of future ages ; and let him always remember, that to carry withliim to the grave the regret of his fellow man, he must display talents and practise virtue. The funeral ceremonies of the most powerful monarchs, have rarely been wetted with the tears of the people they have commonly drained them while living. The names of tyrants excite the horrour of those who hear them pronounced. Tremble, then, cruel kings ! ye Avho plunge your sub- jects into misery who bathe them wiih bitter tears; who ravage nation*. wLo change the fruitful earth into a barrtn cemetery ; tremble for the sanguinary traits under which the future histcrian will paint you to generations yetunborr; : neither your splendid monuments, your imposing victories, your innumerable armies, nor your sycophant courtiers, can prevent posterity from insulting your odious manes, and from avengiri.? their grandfathers of your transcendent crimes. Not only man sees his dissolution with pain, but again he wishes his death may be an interesting event for others. But, as we have already said, he must have talents, he must have beneficence, he must have virtue, in order that those who surround him may interest them- selves in his condition, and may give regret to his ashes. Is it, then, sur- prie com- mendations which he is willing to de- serve ; let him learn to love and esteem himself; but never let him consent that concealed vices, that secret crimes, shall legrade him in his own eyes, and oblige lim to be ashamed of his own conduct. Thus disposed, let him contemplate lis own decease with the same indiffer- ence that it will be looked upon by the greater number of his fellows ; let him ;xpect death with constancy, and wait or it with calm resignation; let him earn to shake off those vain terrours, with which superstition would over- vhelm him ; Jet him leave to the enthusiast his vague hopes ; to the *anatic his madbrained speculations ; o the bigot those fears with which he ninisters to his own melancholy ; but et his heart, fortified by reason, no onger dread a dissolution that will destroy all feeling. Whatever may be the attachment nan has to life, whatever may be his ear of death, it is every day seen that labit, that opinion, that prejudice, are motives sufficiently powerful to anni- lilate these passions in his breast, to 136 EDUCATION, MORALS, &c. make him brave danger, to cause him to hazard his existence. Ambition, pride, jealousy, love, vanity, avarice, the desire of glory, that deference to opinion which is decorated with the sounding title of a point of honour, have the efficacy to make him shut his eyes to danger, and to push him on to death ; vexation, anxiety of mind, dis- grace, want of success, softens to him its hard features, and makes him regard it as a door that will afford him shelter from the injustice of mankind: indi- gence, trouble, adversity, familiarizes him with this death, so terrible to the happy. The poor man, condemned to labour, inured to privations, deprived of the comforts of life, views its approach with indifference ; the unfortunate, when he is unhappy, when he is with- out resource, embraces it in despair, and accelerates its march as soon as he sees that happiness is no longer within his grasp. Man in different ages, and in dif- ferent countries, has formed opinions extremely various upon the conduct of tho-e who have had the courage to put an end to their own existence. His ideas upon this subject, as upon all others, have taken their tone from his religious and political institutions. The Greeks, the Romans, and other nations, which every thing conspired to render courageous and magnanimous, regarded as heroes and as Gods, those who volun- tarily cut the thread of life. In Hin- dostan, the Brahmin yet knows how to inspire even women with sufficient fortitude to burn themselves upon the dead bodies of their husbands. The Japanese upon the most trifling occa- sion makes no kind of difficulty in plunging a dagger into his bosom. Among the people of our own country religion renders man less prodigal of life ; it teaches him that his God, who is willing he should suffer, and who is pleased with his torments, readily con- sents to his being put to a lingering death, but not that he should free him- self from a life of misery by at once cutting the thread of his days. Some moralists, abstracting the height of religious ideas, have held that it never is permitted to man to break the con- ditions of the covenant that he has made with society. Others have looked upon suicide as cowardice, they have thought that it was weakness, that it displayed pusillanimity, to suffer him- self to be overwhelmed with the shafts of his destiny, and have held, that there would be much more courage and eleva- tion of soul, in supporting his afflictions and in resisting the blows of fate. If nature be consulted upon this point, it will be found, that all the actions of man, that feeble plaything in the hands of necessity, are indispensable ; that they depend on causes which move him in despite of himself, and that without his knowledge make him accomplish at each moment of his existence some one of its decrees. If the same power that obliges all intelligent beings to cherish their existence, renders that of man so painful and so cruel that he finds it insupportable, he quits his species ; order is destroyed for him, and he accomplishes a decree of nature that wills he shall no longer exist. This nature has laboured during thousands of years to form in the bowels of the earth the iron that must number his days. If the relation of man with nature be examined, it will be found that his engagement was neither voluntary on his part, nor reciprocal on the part of nature or God. The volition of his will had no share in his birth ; it is com- monly against his will that he is obliged to finish life ; and his actions are, as we have proved, only the necessary effects of unknown causes which determine his will. He is, in the hands of nature, that which a sword is in his own hands ; he can fall upon it without its being able to accuse him with breaking his engagements, or of stamping with in- gratitude the hand that holds it : man can only love his existence on condition of being happy ; as soon as the entire of nature refuses him this happiness ; as soon as all that surrounds hhn be- comes incommodious to him ; as soon as his melancholy ideas offer nothing but afflicting pictures to his imagination, he already exists no longer: he is sus- pended in the void ; and he may quit a rank which no longer suits him ; in which he finds no one interest ; which offers him no protection ; and in which he can no more be useful either to him- self or to others. If the covenant which unites man to society, be considered, it will be obvious EDUCATION, MORALS, &c. 137 that every contract is conditional, must be Jeciprocal; that is to say, supposes mutual advantages between the con- tracting parties. The citizen cannot be bound to his country, to his asso- ciates, but by the bonds of happiness. Are these bonds cut asunder? he is restored to liberty. Society, or those who represent it, do they use him with harshness, do they treat him with injustice, do they render his existence painful? Does disgrace hold him out to the finger of scorn; does indigence menace him, in an obdurate world? Perfidious friends, do they forsake him in adversity ? An unfaithful wife, does she outrage his heart? Rebellious, ungrateful children, do they afflict his old age ? Has he placed his happiness exclusively on some object which it is impossible for him to procure ? Chagrin, remorse, melancholy, despair, have they disfigured to him the spectacle of the universe ? In short, for whatever cause it may be, if he is not able to support his evils, let him quit a world which from thenceforth is for him only a fright- ful desert : let him remove himself for ever from a country he thinks no longer willing to reckon him amongst the num- ber of her children : let him quit a house that to his mind is ready to bury him under its ruins: let him renounce a society to the happiness of which he can no longer contribute ; which his own peculiar felicity alone can render dear to him. And could the man be blamed, who finding himself useless, who being without resources in the town where destiny gave him birth, should quit it in his chagrin to plunge himself in solitude? Death is to the wretched the only remedy for despair; the sword is then the only friend the only comfort that is left to the unhappy : as long as hope remains the tenant of his bosom ; as long as his evils appear to him at all supportable ; as long as he flatters himself with seeing them brought to a termination ; as long as he finds some comfort in existence however slender, he will not consent to deprive himself of life: but when nothing any longer sustains in him the love of this existence, then to live, is to him the greatest of evils ; to die, the only mode by which he can avoid the excess of despair.* * This has been the opinion of many great That society who has not the ability, or who is not willing to procure man any one benefit, loses all its rights over him ; nature, when it has rendered his existence completely miserable, has in fact ordered him to quit it : in dying he does no more than fulfil one of her decrees, as he did when he first drew his breath. To him who is fearless of death, there is no evil without a remedy ; for him who refuses to die, there yet exist benefits which attach him to the world ; in this case let him rally his powers, let him oppose courage to a destiny that oppresses him ; let him call forth those resources with which nature yet furnishes him ; she cannot have totally abandoned him whilst she yet leaves him the sensation of pleasure, and the hopes of seeing a period to his pains. As to the superstitious, there is no end to his sufferings, for he is not allowed to abridge them.f . His religion bids him to continue to groan, and for- bids his recurring to death, which would lead him to a miserable state of exist- ence : he would be eternally punished for daring to anticipate the tardy orders of a cruel God, who takes pleasure in men : Seneca, the moralist, whom Lactantius calls the divine Pagan, who has been praised equally by St. Austin and by St. Augustine, endeavours by every kind of argument to make death a matter of indifference to man : Malum est in necessitate vivere : sed in neces- sitate yivere, necessitas nulla est. Q.uidni nnlla sit 1 Patent undique ad libertatem yiae multae, breves, faciles. Agamus Deo gratias, quod nemo in vita teneri possit. V. Senec. Epist. xii. Cato has always been com- mended, because he would not survive the cause of liberty, for that he would not live a slave. Curtius, who rode voluntarily into the gap to save his country, has always been held forth as a model of heroic virtue. Is it not evident that those martyrs who have delivered themselves up to punishment, have preferred quitting the world, to living in it contrary to their own ideas of happiness? When the fabulous Samson wished to be revenged on the Philistines, did he not consent to die with them as the only means? If our country is attacked, do we not voluntarily sacrifice our lives in its defence ? t Christianity, and the civil laws of Chris- tians, arevery inconsistent in censuring suicide. The Old Testament furnishes examples in Sam- son and Eleazar that is to sav, in men who stood very high with God. The H'Lssiah, or the son of the Christians' God, if it be true that he dii'd of his own accord, was evidently a suicide. The same may be said of those peni- tents who have made it a merit of gradually destroying themselves. 138 EDUCATION, MORALS, &c. seeing him reduced to despair, and who wills that man should not have the audacity to quit, without his consent, the post assigned to him. Man regulates his judgment on his fellows only by his own peculiar mode of feeling ; he deems as folly, he calls delirium, all those violent actions which he believes but little commensurate with their causes, or which appear to him calculated to deprive him of that happi- ness towards which he supposes a being, in the enjoyment of his senses, cannot cease to have a tendency : he treats his associate as a weak creature when he sees him affected with that Avhich touches him but lightly, or when he is incapable of supporting those evils which his self-love natters him he would himself be able to endure with more fortitude. He accuses of madness who- ever deprives himself of life, for objects that he thinks unworthy so dear a sacli- fice ; he taxes him with phrensy, becaus 3 lie has himself learned to regard this life as the greatest blessing. It is thus that he always erects himself into a judge of the happiness of others, of their mode of seeing, and of their manner of feeling. A miser who destroys himself after the loss of his treasure, appears a fool in the eyes of him who is less attached to riches ; he does not feel, that without money life to this miser is only a con- tinued torture, and that nothing in the world is capable of diverting him from his painful sensations : he will proudly tell you, that in his place he had not done so much ; but to be exactly in the place of another man, it is needful to nave his organization, his temperament, his passions, his ideas ; it is in fact needful to be that other to be placed exactly in the same circumstances, to be moved by the same causes ; and in this case all men, like the miser, would sacrifice their life after being deprived of the only source of their happiness. He who deprives himself of his exist- ence, does not adopt this extremity, so repugnant to his natural tendency, but when nothing in this world has the faculty of rejoicing him when no means are left of diverting his afflic- tion. His misfortune, whatever it may be, for him is real ; his organization, be it strong, or be it weak, is his own, not that of another ; a man who is sick only in imagination, really suffers, and even troublesome dreams place him in a very uncomfortable situation. Thus when a man kills himself, it ought to be concluded, that life, in the room of being a benefit, had become a very great evil to him ; that existence had lost all its charms in his eyes ; that the entire of nature was to him destitute of attrac- tion; that it no longer contained any thing that could seduce him ; that after the comparison which his disturbed imagination had made of existence \vith non-existence, the latter appeared to him preferable to the first. Many persons will not fail to con- sider as dangerous these maxims, which, in spite of the received prejudices, autho- rize the unhappy to cut the thread of life; but maxims will never induce ?. r^an to adopt such a violent resolution: it is a temperament soured by chagrin, a bilious constitution, a melancholy habit, a defect iu the organization, a derange- ment in the whole machine, it is in fact necessity, and not reasonable specula- tions, that breed in man the design of destroying himself. Nothing invites him to this step so long as reason remains with him, or whilst he yet possesses hope that sovereign balm for every evil. As for the unfortunate, who cannot lose sight of his sorrows, who cannot forget his pains, who has his evils always present to his mind; he is obliged to take counsel from these alone. Besides, what assistance or what advantage can society promise to itself from a miserable wretch reduced to despair, from a misanthrope over- whelmed with grief, from a wretch tormented with remorse, who has no longer any motive to render himself useful to others, who has abandoned himself, and who finds no more interest in preserving his life ? Those who destroy themselves are such, that had they lived, the offended laws must have ultimately been obliged to remove them from a society which they disgraced. As life is, commonly, the greatest blessing for man, it is to be presumed that he who deprives himself of it, is impelled thereto by an invincible force. It is the excess of misery, the height of despair, the derangement of his brain caused by melancholy, that urges man on to destroy himself. Agitated by contrary impulsions, he is, as we have before said, obliged to follow a middla OF MAN'S TRUE INTEREST. 139 course, that conducts him to his death if man be not a free agent, in any on, instant of his life, he is again much less. so in the act by which it is terminated.* It will be seen, then, that he who kills himself, does not, as it is pretended commit an outrage on nature or its author. He follows an impulse of tha nature, and thus adopts the only means left him to quit his anguish ; he goes out of a door which she leaves open to him ; he cannot offend her in accom- plishing a law of necessity ; the iron hand of this having broken the spring that renders life desirable to him, anc which urged him to self-conservation, shows him he ought to quit a rank or system where he finds himself too miserable to have the desire of remain- ing. His country or his family have no right to complain of a member whom it has no means of rendering happy, and from whom consequently they have nothing more to hope. To be useful to either, it is necessary he should cherish his own peculiar existence ; that he should have an interest in conserving himself; that he should love the bonds by which he is united to others ; that he should be capable of occupying him- self with their felicity. That the suicide should be punished in another world, and should repent of his precipitancy, he should outlive himself, and should carry with him into his future residence his organs, his senses, his memory, his ideas, his actual mode of existing, his determinate manner of thinking. In short, nothing is more useful for society than to inspire man with a contempt for death, and to banish from his mind the false ideas he has of its consequences. The fear of death can never do more than make cowards ; the fear of its pretended consequences will make nothing but fanatics or melan- choly 'beings, who are useless to them- selves and unprofitable to others. Death is a resource that ought not to be taken away from oppressed virtue, which the injustice of man frequently reduces to despair. If man feared death less, he would neither be a slave nor super- * Suicide is said to be very common in England, whose climate produces melancholy m its inhabitants. In that country those who kill themselves are looked upon as lunali<:< , their disease does not seem more blameable than any other delirium. stitiou-s ; truth would find defenders more zealous ; the rights of mankind would be more hardily sustained ; errour would be more powerfully opposed ; tyranny would be banished from na- tions : cowardice nourishes it, fear per- petuates it. In fact, man can neither be contented nor happy, whilst his opinions shall oblige him to tremble. CHAPTER XV. Of Man's true Interest, or of the Ideas he forms to himself of Happiness. Man can- not he Happy wilfiout Virtue. UTILITY, as has been before observed, ought to be the only standard of the judgment of man. To be useful, is to contribute to the happiness of his fellow creatures ; to be prejudicial, is to further their misery. This granted, let us ex- amine if the principles we have hitherto established be prejudicial or advan- tageous, useful or useless, to the human race. If man unceasingly seeks after his happiness, he can only approve of that which procures for him his object, or furnishes him the means by which it is to be obtained. What has been already said will serve in fixing our ideas upon what constitutes this happiness : it has been already shown, that it is only continued pleasure ;f but in order that an object may please, it is necessary that the impressions it makes, the perceptions it gives, the ideas which it leaves, in short, that the motion it excites in man should be analogous to his organization, conformable to his temperament, assimi- lated to his individual nature : modified as it is by habit, determined as it is by an infinity of circumstances, it is neces- sary that the action of the object by which he is moved, or of which the Idea remains with him, far from en- feebling him, far from annihilating his 'eelings sh6uld tend to strengthen him ; t is necessary, that without fatiguing iis mind, exhausting his faculties or deranging his organs, this object should inpurt to his machine that decree of activity for which it continually has occasion. What is the object that unites all these qualities ? Where is he man whose organs are susceptible t See Chapter IX. 140 OF MAN'S TRUE INTEREST. of continual agitation without being fatigued, without experiencing a pain- ful sensation, without sinking? Man is always willing to be warned of his existence in the most lively manner, as long as he can be so without pain. What do I say 1 He consents fre- quently to suffer, rather than not feel. He accustoms himself to a thousand things, which at first must have affected nim in a disagreeable manner, and which frequently end, either by con- verting themselves into wants, or by no longer affecting him any way.* Where, indeed, can he always find objects in nature capable of continually supplying the stimulus requisite to keep him in an activity that shall be ever proportioned to the state of his own organization, which his extreme mo- bility renders subject to perpetual vari- ation 1 The most lively pleasures are always the least durable, seeing they are those which exhaust him most. That man should be uninterruptedly happy, it would "be requisite that his powers were infinite ; it would require, that, to his mobility he joined a vigour, a solidity, which nothing could change ; or else it is necessary that the objects from which he receives impulse should either acquire or lose properties, accord- ing to the different states through which his machine is successively obliged to pass ; it would need that the essences of beings should be changed in the same proportion as his dispositions, and should be submitted to the con- tinual influence of a thousand causes, which modify him without his know- ledge, and in despite of himself. If, at each moment his machine undergoes changes, more or less marked, which are ascribable to the different degrees of elasticity, of density, of serenity of the atmosphere, to the portion of igneous fluid circulating through his blood, to * Of this truth, tobacco, coffee, and above all, brandy, furnish examples. It was this last which enabled the Europeans to enslave the negro and to subdue the savage. This is also the reason man runs to see tragedies and to witness the execution of criminals. In short, the desire of feeling, or of being powerfully moved, appears to be the principle of curiosity of that avidity with which we seize on the marvellous, the supernatural, the incompre- hensible, and on every thing that excites the imagination. Men cling to their religions as the savage does to brandy. the harmony of his organs, to the ordet that exists between the various parts, of his body ; if, at every period of his existence, his nerves have not the same tensions, his fibres the same elasticity, his mind the same activity, his imagi- nation the same ardour, &c., it is evi- dent, that the same causes in preserving to him only the same qualities, cannot always affect him in the same manner. Here is the reason why those objects that please him in one season displease him in another: these objects have not themselves sensibly changed, but his organs, his dispositions, his ideas, his mode of seeing, his manner of feeling, have changed ; such is the source of man's inconstancy. If the same objects are not constantly in that state competent to form the hap- piness of the same individual, it is easy to perceive, that they are yet less in a capacity to please all men ; or that the same happiness cannot be suitable to all. Beings already various by their temperament, their faculties, their organization, their imagination, their ideas, of distinct opinions, of contrary habits, whick an infinity of circum- stances, whether physical or moral, have variously modified, must neces- sarily form very different notions of happiness. Those of a nSiser cannot be the same as those of a prodigal ; those of the voluptuary, the same as those of one who is phlegmatic ; those of an intemperate, the same as those of a rational man who husbands his health. The happiness of each is in consequence composed of his natural organization, and of those circum- stances, of those habits, of those ideas, whether true or false, that have modi- fied him : this organization and these circumstances never being the same in any two men, it follows that what is the object of one man's views, most be indifferent or even displeasing to an- other ; thus, as we have before said, no one can be capable of judging of that which may contribute to the feli- city of his fellow man. Interest, is the object to which each individual, according to his tempera- ment and his own peculiar ideas, attaches his welfare ; from which it will be perceived, that this interest is never more than that which each con- templates as necessary to his happiness. OF MAN'S TRUE INTEREST. ft must, therefore, be concluded, that no man is totally without interest. That of the miser, is to amass wealth ; that of the prodigal, to dissipate it ; the interest of the ambitious, is to obtain power ; that of the modest philosopher, to enjoy tranquillity : the interest of the debauchee, is to give himself up with- out reserve to all sorts of pleasure ; that of the prudent man, to abstain from those which may injure him : the inter- est of the wicked, is to gratify his pas- sions at any price : that of the virtuous, to merit by his conduct the love and the approbation of others ; to do nothing that can ' degrade himself in his own eyes. Thus, when it is said, that interest is the only motive of human actions, it is meant to indicate, that each man labours after his own manner to his own peculiar happiness, which he pla- ces in some object, either visible or con- cealed, either real or imaginary, and that the whole system of his conduct is directed to its attainment. This granted, no man can be called disinter- ested ; this appellation is only applied to those of whose motives we are ignor- ant, or whose interest we approve. Thus, the man who finds a greater pleasure in assisting his friends in mis- fortune, than preserving in his coffers useless treasure, is called generous, faithful, and disinterested : in like man- ner all men are denominated disinter- ested, who feel their glory far more precious than their fortune. In short, all men are designated disinterested, who place their happiness in making" sacrifices which man considers costly, because he does not attach the same value to the object for which the sacri- fice is made. Man frequently judges very errone- ously of the interest of others, either because the motives that.animate them are too complicated for him to unravel ; or, because to be enabled to judge of them fairly, it is needful to have the same eyes, the same organs, the same passions, the same opinions: neverthe- less, obliged to form his judgment of the actions of mankind by their effect on himself, he approves the interest that actuates them, whenever the result is advantageous for his species : thus, he admires valour, generosity, the love of liberty, great talents, virtue, &c., he then only approves of the objects, in which the beings he applauds, have placed their happiness ; he approves these dis- positions even when lie is not in a ca- pacity to feel their effects ; but in this judgment he is not himself disinterest- ed ; experience, reflection, habit, reason, have given him a taste for morals, and he finds as much pleasure in being wit- ness to a great and generous action, as the man of virtu finds in the sight of a fine picture of which he is not the pro- prietor. He who has formed to himself a habit of practising virtue, is a man who has unceasingly before his eyes the interest that he has in meriting the affection, in deserving the esteem, in securing the assistance of others, as well as to love and esteem himself: impressed with these ideas, which have become habitual to him, he abstains even from concealed crimes, since these would degrade him in his own eyes he resembles a man, who having from his infancy contracted a habit of clean-- liness, Would be painfully affected, at seeing himself dirty, even when no one should witness it. The honest man is he to whom truth has shown his inter- est or his happiness in a mode of acting that others are obliged to love and to approve for their own peculiar interest. These principles, duly developed, are the true basis of morals ; nothing is more chimerical than those which are founded upon imaginary motives, pla- ced out of nature ; or upon innate sen- timents, which some speculators have regarded as anterior to man's experi- ence, and as wholly independent of those advantages which result to him from its use : it is the essence of man to love himself: to tend to his own conservation ; to seek to render his ex- istence happy :* thus interest, or the desire of happiness, is the only real motive of all his actions ; this interest depends upon his natural organization, his wants, his acquired ideas, the habits he has contracted ; he is without doubt in errour, when either a vitiated organ- ization or false opinions show him his welfare in objects either useless or in- jurious to himself, as well as to others ; he marches steadily in the paths of vir- * Seneca says : Modus ergo diligendi pree- cipiendus eet hpmini, id est quomodo se dili- gat aiit prosit sibi ; quin autem diligat aut pro sit sibi, dubitare dementis est. 142 OF MAN'S TRUE INTEREST. tue, when true ideas have made him rest his happiness on a conduct useful to his species, approved by others, and which renders him an interesting object to his associates. Morals would be a vain science, if it did not incontestably prove to man that his interest consists in being virtuous. Obligation, of what- ever kind, can only be founded upon the probability or the certitude of either ob- taining a good or avoiding an evil. Indeed, in no one instant of his dura- tion, can a sensible and intelligent be- ing either lose sight of his own preser- vation or forget his own welfare ; he owes happiness to himself; but experi- ence quickly proves to him, that be- reaved of assistance, he cannot alone procure all those objects which are re- quisite to his felicity : he lives with sensible, with intelligent beings, occu- pied like himself with their own pe- culiar happiness, but capable of assist- ing him in obtaining those objects he most desires ; he discovers that these beings will not be favourable to his views, but when they find their interest involved ; from which he concludes, that his own happiness demands that he should conduct himself at all times in a manner suitable to conciliate the attachment, to obtain the approbation, to elicit the esteem, to secure the assist- ance of those beings who are most ca- pacitated to further his designs. He perceives that it is man who is most necessary to the welfare of man, and that to induce him to join in his inter- ests, he ought to make him find real advantages in seconding his projects : but to procure real advantages to the beings of the human species, is to have virtue ; the reasonable man, therefore, is obliged to feel that it is his interest to be virtuous. Virtue is only the art of rendering himself happy, by the feli- city of others. The virtuous man is he who communicates happiness to those beings who are capable of rendering his own condition happy, who are ne- cessary to his conservation, who have the ability to procure him a felicitous existence. Such, then, is the true foundation of all morals ; merit and virtue are found- ed upon the nature of man ; have their dependance upon his wants. It is vir- tue, alone, that can render him truly happy :* without virtue, society can neither be useful nor indeed subsist; it can only have real utility when it as- sembles beings animated with the de- sire of pleasing each other, and disposed to labour to their reciprocal advantage : there exists no comfort in those fami- lies whose members are not in the hap- py disposition to lend each other mutual succours ; who hare not a reciprocity of feeling that stimulates them to assist one the other; that induces them to cling to each other, to support the sor- rows of life ; to unite their efforts to put away those evils to which nature has subjected them. The conjugal bonds are sweet only in proportion as they identify the interest of two beings, united by the want of legitimate pleas- ure, from whence results the mainte- nance of political society, and the means of furnishing it with citizens. Friendship has charms, only when it more particularly associates two virtu- ous beings ; that is to say, two beings animated with the sincere desire of con- spiring to their reciprocal happiness. In short, it is only by displaying virtue that man can merit the benevolence, the confidence, the esteem, of all those with whom he has relation ; in a word, no man can be independently happy. Indeed, the happiness of each human individual depends on those sentiments to which he gives birth, on those feel- ings which he nourishes in the beings amongst whom his destiny has placed him ; grandeur may dazzle them ; power and force may wrest from them an in- voluntary homage; opulence may se- duce mean and venal souls; but it is humanity, it is benevolence, it is com- passion, it is equity, that, unassisted by these, can without efforts obtain for him those delicious sentiments of attach- ment, of tenderness, of esteem, of which all reasonable_ men feel the necessity. To be virtuous, then, is to place his in- terest in that which accords with the interest of others ; it is to enjoy those benefits and that pleasure which he himself diffuses over his fellows. He, whom his nature, his education, his re- flections, his habits, have rendered sus- * Est autem virtus nihil aliud quam in ee perfecta et ad summum perducta nattira.. Cicr-ro. Da Lesibus 1. He says elsewhere Virtus rationis abso' itio definitur. OF MAN'S TRUE INTEREST. 143 ceptibl* of these dispositions, and to whom nis circumstances have given Jam the faculty of gratifying them, be- comes an interesting object to all those who approach him: he enjoys every instant; he reads with satisfaction the contentment and the joy which he has diffused over all countenances: his wife, his children, his friends, his ser- vants, greet him with gay and serene faces, indicative of that content and of that peace which he recognises for his own work: every thing that environs him is ready to partake his pleasures and to share his pains; cherished, re- spected, looked up to by others, every thing conducts him to agreeable reflec- tions : he knows the rights he has ac- quired over their hearts; he applauds himself for being the source of a felicity that captivates all the world ; his own condition, his sentiments of self-love, become a hundred times more delicious when he sees the'm participated by all those with whom his destiny has con- nected him. The habit of virtue creates for him no wants but those which vir- tue itself suffices to satisfy ; it is thus that virtue is always its own peculiar reward, that it remunerates itself with all the advantages it incessantly pro- cures for others. It will be said, and perhaps even proved, that under the present constitu- tion of things, virtue, far from procuring the welfare of those who practise it, frequently plunges man into misfortune, and often places continual obstacles to his felicity ; that almost every Avhere it is without recompense. What do I say ? A thousand examples could be adduced as evidence that in almost every coun- try it is hated, persecuted, obliged to lament the ingratitude of human nature. I reply, with avowing, that by a neces- sary consequence of the wanderings and errours of his race, virtue rarely conducts man to those objects in which ihe uninformed make their happiness consist. The greater number of socie- ties, tco frequently ruled by those whose ignorance makes them abuse their pow- er, whose prejudices render them the enemies of virtue, who flattered by sy- cophants, secure in the impunity their actions enjoy, commonly lavish their esteem, bestow their kindness on none but the most unworthy objects, reward only the most frivolous, recompense none but the most prejudicial qualities : and hardly ever accord that justice to merit which is unquestionably its due. But the truly honest man is neither am bitious of remuneration, nor sedulous of the suffrages of a society thus badly constituted : contented with domestic happiness, he seeks not to augment re- lations which would do no more than increase his danger; he knows that a vitiated community is a whirl wind, with which an honest man cannot co-order himself; he therefore steps aside, quits the beaten path, by continuing in which he would infallibly be crushed. He does all the good of which he is capa- ble in his sphere ; he leaves the road free to the wicked, who are willing to wade through its mire ; he laments the heavy strokes they inflict on them- selves ; he applauds the mediocrity that affords him security ; he pities those nations made miserable by their errours ; rendered unhappy by those passions which are the fatal but neces- sary consequence ; he sees they contain nothing but wretched citizens, who far from cultivating their true interest, far from labouring to their mutual felicity, far from feeling the real value of virtue, unconscious how dear it ought to be to them, do nothing but either openly attack or secretly injure it ; in short, who detest a quality which would re- strain their disorderly propensities. In saying that virtue is its own pe- culiar reward, it is simply meant to an- nounce, that, in a society whose views were guided by truth, by experience, and by reason, each individual would be acquainted with his real interests, would understand the true end of asso- ciation, would have sound motives to perform his duties, and find real advan- tages in fulfilling them ; in fact, would be convinced that to render himself sol- idly happy, he should occupy his ac- tions with the welfare of his fellows, and by their utility, merit their esteem, their kindness, and their assistance. In a well constituted society, the govern- ment, the laws, education, example, would all conspire to prove to the citi- zen, that the nation of which he forms a part is a \vhole that cannot be happy that cannot subsist without virtue ; ex- perience would, at each step, convince him that the welfare of its parts can only result from that of the whole body 144 OF MAN'S TRUE INTEREST. corporate ; justice would mnke him feel, that no society can he advantageous to its members whore the volition of wills in those who act, is not so conformahle to the interests of the whole, as to pro- duce an advantageous reaction. But, aias ! by the confusion which, the errours of man have carried into his ideas, virtue, disgraced, banished and persecuted, finds not one of those ad- | vantages it has a right to expect; man is indeed shoAvn those pretended re- ! wards for it in a future life, of which he is almost always deprived in his ac- i tual existence. It is thought necessary i to deceive, to seduce, to intimidate him, in order to induce him to follow that virtue which every thing renders in- commodious to him ; he is fed. with dis- tant hopes, in order to solicit him to practise virtue, while contemplation of j the world makes it hateful to him : he is alarmed by remote terrours to deter I him from committing evil, which all : conspires to render amiable and neces- i sary. It is thus that politics and su- ' perstition, by the formation of chime- ' ras, by the creation of fictitious inter- ests, pretend to supply those true and real motives which nature furnishes, which experience points out, which an enlightened government should hold forth, which the law ought to enforce, j which instruction should sanction, which example should encourage, which rational opinions would render pleasant. Man, blinded by his pas- ! sions, not less dangerous than neces- sary, led away by precedent, authorized by custom, enslaved by habit, pays no attention to these uncertain promises and menaces ; the actual interest of his immediate pleasures, the force of his passions, the inveteracy of his habits, always rise superior to the distant in- terests pointed out in his future wel- fare, or the remote evils with which he is threatened, which always appear doubtful whenever he compares them with present advantages. Thus superstition, far from making man virtuous by principle, does nothing more than impose upon him a yoke as severe as it is useless : it is borne by none but enthusiasts, or by thfc pusillan- imous, who, without becoming better, tremblingly champ the feeble bit put into their mouth. Indeed, experience incontestably proves, that religion is a dike inadequate to restrain the torrent of corruption to which *o many accu- mulated causes give an irresistible force: nay more, does not this religion itself augment the public disorder, by the dangerous passions which it lets loose and consecrates ? Virtue, in al- most every climate, is confined to some few rational beings, who have sufficient strength of mind to resist the stream of prejudice; Avho are contented by re- munerating themselves with the bene- fits they diffuse over society ; whose temperate dispositions are gratified with the suffrages of a small number of virtuous approvers : in short, who are detached from those frivolous ad vantages which the injustice of society but too commonly accords only to base- ness, to intrigue, and to crime. In despite of the injustice that reigns in the world, there are, however, some virtuous men ; in the bosom even of the most degenerate nations, there are some benevolent beings, still enamoured of virtue, who are fully acquainted with its true value, who are sufficiently en-- lightened to know that it exacts hom- age even from its enemies ; wlro are at least satisfied with those concealed pleasures and recompenses, of which no earthly power is competent to de- prive them. The honest man acquires a right to the esteem, the veneration, the confidence, the love, even of those whose conduct is exposed by a contrast with-his own. In short, vice is obliged to cede to virtue, of which it blushingly acknowledges the superiority. Inde- pendent of this ascendency so gentle, so grand, so infallible, if even the whole universe should be unjust to him, thera yet remains to the honest man the. ad- vantage of loving his own conduct, of esteeming himself, of diving with sat- isfaction into the recesses of his own heart, of contemplating his own ac- tions with that delicious complacency that others ought to do, if they were not hoodwinked. No power is adequate to ravish from him the merited esteem of himself; no authority is sufficiently potent to give it to him when he de- serves it not; but when it is not well founded it is then a ridiculous senti- ment : it ought to be censured when il displays itself in a mode that is morti- fying and troublesome toothers; it H then called arrogance ; ii' it rest itself upon frivolous actions, it is called van- ity; but when it cannot be condemned when it is known for legitimate, when it is discovered to have a solid founda- tion, when it bottoms itself upon talents when it rises upon great actions that are useful to the community, when it erects its edifice upon virtue, even though so- ciety should not set these merits at their just price, it is noble pride, elevation of mind, grandeur of soul. Let^us not, then, listen to the preach- ing of tho?e superstitions which ene- mies to man's happiness, have been 3sirous of destroying it, even in the inmost recesses of his heart; which have prescribed to him hatred of his ellowa and contempt for himself; which pretend to wrest from the honest man that self-respect which is frequent- ly the only reward that remains to vir- tue in a perverse world. To annihilate in him tins sentiment so full of justice this love of himself, is to break the most powerful spring that urges him to act right. What motive, indeed, ex- cept it be this, remains for him in the greater -part of human societies 'I Is not virtue discouraged and contemned 1 Is not audacious crime and cuunin- vice rewarded 'I Is not love of the nub- i 1C i C T, eal t ? xcd as foll y 5 exactitude in fulfilling duties looked upon as a bub- ble? Is not compassion, sensibility, tenderness, conjugal fidelity, sincerity, inviolable friendship, treated with rid'i cule? Man must have motives for ac tion: he neither acts wefl nor "ill, bu with a view to his OWE happiness to that which he thinks his interest ; he does nothing gratuitously ; and when reward for useful actions is withhelc from him, he is reduced either to be- come as abandoned as others, or else to remunerate liiir^lf with his own ap- plause. This granted, the honest man can never be completely unhappy ; he can never be entirely deprived of the recom- pense which is his due ; virtue can am- ply make up to him all the happiness de- nied him by public opinion; but nothin^ can compensate to him the want of vir- tue. It does not follow that the honest man will be exempted from afflictions : like the wicked, he is subjected to phys- ical evils; he may be worn down with disease ; he may frequently be the sub- ject of calumny of injustice, of in^rat- Nn. V 10 OF MAN'S TRUE INTEREST. 113 Jtudc, of hatred ; but in the midst of all ins misfortunes, of his sorrpws, he finds support m himself, he is contented with his own conduct, he respects himself, he feels his own dignity, he knows the equity of his rights, and consoles him- H with the confidence inspired by the justness of his cause. These supports are not calculated for the wicked Equally liable with the honest man to* infirmities and to the caprices of his destiny, he finds the recesses of his own heart filled with dreadful alarms, cares solicitude, regret, and remorse ; he dies withm 1-n'inc.nif. u; _ _. . ue, regrei, ana remorse ; he dies himself; his conscience sustains him not, but loads him with reproach and his mind, overwhelmed, sinks un- der the storm. The honest man is not an insensible stoic; virtue does not procure impassibility, but if wretched it enables Him to cast off despair ; if norm, he has less to complain of than the vicious being who is oppressed with sickness; if indigent, he is less unhap- py m his poverty ; if in disgrace he is not overwhelmed by its pressure, like the wretched slave to crime. Thus the happiness of each indi- vidual depends on the cultivation of his temperament; nature makes both the happy and the unhappy; it i s cu l ture that gives value to the soil nature has formed, and instruction and reflection make it useful. For man to be happily born isto i have received from nature a sound body, organs that act with pre- cision, a just mind, a heart whose pas- sions and desires are analogous and conformable to the circumstances in which his destiny has placed him. Na- ure, then, has done every thing for him when she has joined to' these faculties the quantum of vigour and energy suf- ficient to enable him to obtain" those ngs, which his station, his mode of thinking, his temperament, have ren- dered desirable. Nature has made him a fatal present, when she has filled his sanguinary vessels with an overheated Hd, given him an imagination too ac- tive, desires too impetuous after objects sither impossible or improper to be ob- amed under his circumstances; or icn at least he cannot procure with- it those incredible efforts that either )Iace his own welfare in danger or dis- urb the repose of society. The raosr lappy man is commonly he who pos- esses a peaceable mind, who only de- 146 OF MAX'S TRUE INTEREST. sires those things which he can procure by labour suitable to maintain his ac- tivity, without causing shocks that are either too violent or troublesome. A philosopher, whose wants are easily satisfied, who is a stranger to ambition, who is contented with the limited cir- cle of a small number of friends, is, without doubt, a being much more hap- pily constituted than an ambitious con- queror, Avhose greedy imagination is reduced to despair by having only one world to ravage. He who is happily born, or whom nature has rendered susceptible of being conveniently mod- ified, is not a being injurious to society : it is generally disturbed by men who are unhappily born, whose organiza- tion renders them turbulent, who are discontented Avith their destiny, who are inebriated Avith their own licentious passions, who are smitten with difficult enterprises, \vho set the world in com- bustion to gather imaginary benefits, in which they make their own happiness consist. An Alexander requires the destruction of empires,, nations to be deluged with blood, cities to be laid in ashes, its inhabitants to be extermina- ted, to content that passion for glory of which he has formed to himself a false idea, but which his too ardent imagina- tion anxiously thirsts after : -for a Dio- genes there needs only a tub, with the liberty of appearing whimsical : a Soc- rates wants nothing but the pleasure of forming disciples to virtue. Man by his organization is a being to whom motion is always necessary, he must therefore always desire it ; this is the reason why too much facility in procuring the objects of his search, renders them quickly insipid. To feel happiness, it is necessary to make ef- forts to obtain it ; to find charms in its enjoyment, it is necessary that the de- sire should be Avhetted by obstacles ; he is presently disgusted with those benefits which have cost him but little pains. The expectations of happiness, the labour requisite to procure it, the varied and multiplied pictures which his imagination forms to him, supply his brain with that motion for which it has occasion ; this gives impulse to his organs, puts his Avhole machine into activity, exercises his faculties, sets all his springs in play ; in a word, puts him into tkat agreeable activity, for the want of Avhich the enjoyment of happiness itself cannot compensate him. Action is the true element of the human mind ; as soon as it ceases to act, it sinks into lassitude. His mind has the same oc- casion for ideas his stomach has for aliment.* Thus the impulse given him by de- sire is itself a great benefit ; it is to the mind Avhat exercise is to the body ; Avithout it he Avould not derive any pleasure in the aliments presented to him ; it is thirst that renders the pleas- ure of drinking so agreeable. Life is a perpetual circle of regenerated desires and wants satisfied : repose is only a pleasure to him who labours ; it is a source of weariness, the cause of sor- row, the spring of vice to him who has nothing to do. To enjoy without in- terruption is not to enjoy any thing: the man who has nothing to desire is certainly more unhappy than he who suffers. These reflections, grounded upon ex- perience, ought to prove to man that good as Avell as evil depends on the es- sence of things. Happiness to be felt cannot be continued. Labour is neces- sary to make intervals between his pleasures ; his body has occasion for exercise to co-order him with the be- ings who surround him ; his heart must have desires; trouble alone can give him the right relish of his welfare ; it is this which puts in the shadows to the picture of human life. By an ir- revocable law of his destiny, man is obliged to be discontented" with his present condition ; to make efforts to change it ; to recijvrocally envy that fe- licity which no individual enjoys per- fectly. Thus the poor man envies the opulence of the rich, although this one is frequently more unhappy than his needy neighbour; thus ihe rich man vieAvs with pain the advantages- of a * The advantage which philosophers and men of letters have over the ignorant and the idle, or over those that neither think nor study, is owing to the variety as well as quantity of ideas furnished to the mind by study and re- flection. The mind of a man who thinks finds more delight in a good book than can be obtained by all the riches at the command of the ignorant. To study is to amass ideas ; and the number and combination of ideas make that difference between man and man which we observe, besides giving him an ad- vantage over all other animals. OP MAN'S TRUE INTEREST. poverty which he sees active, healthy and frequently jocund even in the be som of penury. If man were perfectly contented, ther would no longer be any activity in th world; it is necessary that he shouK desire, act, labour, in order that he ma be happy: such is the course of nature of which the life consists in action Human societies can only subsist bj the continual exchange of those thing in which man places his happiness The poor man is obliged to desire anc to labour, that he may procure what h< knows is requisite to the preservatior of his existence ; the primary wants given to him by nature, are to nourish himself, clothe himself, lodge himself and propagate his species ; has he sat- isfied these? he is quickly obliged to create others entirely new; or rather his imagination only refines upon the first ; he seeks to diversify them ; he is willing to give them fresh zest ; arrivec at opulence, when he has run over the whole circle of wants, when he has completely exhausted their combina- tions, he ialls into disgust. Dispensed from labour, his body amasses humours ; destitute of desires, his heart feels a languor; deprived of activity, he is obliged to divide his riches with beings more active, more laborious than him- self: these, following their own pecu- liar interests, take upon themselves the task of labouring for his advantage, of procuring for him means to satisfy his wants, of ministering to his caprices in order to remove the languor that op- presses him. It is thus the great, the rich, excite the energies, the activity, the industry of the indigent; these la- bour to their own peculiar welfare by working for others : thus the desire of ameliorating his condition, renders man necessary to his fellow man; thus wants, always regenerating, never sat- isfied, are the principles of life, of activ- ity, the source of health, the basis of society. If each individual were com- petent to the supply of his own exigen- cies, there would be no occasion for him to congregate in society, but his wants, his desires, his whims, place him in a state of dependance on others : these are the causes that each individ- ual, in order to further his own pecu- liar interest, is obliged to be useful to those who have the capability of pro- 147 curing for him the objects which he himself has not. A nation is nothing more than the union of a great number of individuals, connected with each other by the reciprocity of their wants or by their mutual desire of pleasure ; the most happy man is he who has the' fewest wants, and the most numerous means of satisfying them.* In the individuals of the human spe- cies, as well as in political society, the progression of wants, is a thing abso- lutely necessary ; it is founded upon the essence of man; it is requisite that the natural wants once satisfied, should be replaced by those which he calls ima- ginary, or wants of the fancy ; these become as necessary to his happiness as the first. Custom, which permits the native American to go quite naked, obliges the more civilized inhabitant of Europe to clothe himself; the poor man contents himself with very simple at- tire, which equally serves him for win- ter and for summer ; the rich man de- sires to have garments suitable to each season ; he would experience pain if he had not the convenience of changing his raiment with every variation of his climate ; he would be unhappy if the expense and variety of his costume did not display to the surrounding multi- tude his opulence, mark his rank, an- nounce his supeiority. It is thus habit multiplies the wants of the wealthy ; it is thus that vanity itself becomes a want, which sets a thousand haads in motion, who are all eager to gratify its cra- vings ; in short, this very vanity pro- cures for the necessitous man the means of subsisting at the expense of his opu- ent neighbour. He who is accustom- id to pomp, who is used to ostentatious iplendour, whose habits are luxurious, whenever he is deprived of these insig- nia of opulence to which he has attach- ed the idea of happiness, finds himself ust as unhappy as the needy wretch who has not wherewith to cover his lakedness. The civilized nations of he present day were in their origin avages composed of erratick tribes, mere wanderers who were occupied with war and the chase, obliged to seek precarious subsistence by hunting in * The man who would be truly rich, has no eed to increase his fortune, it suffices he lould diminish his wants. 143 OF MAN'S TRUE INTEREST. those woods : in time they hare become stationary ; they first applied them- selves to agriculture, afterwards to com- merce; by degrees they have refined on their primitive wants, extended their sphere of action, given birth to a thou- sand new wants, imagined a thousand new means to satisfy them; this is the natural and necessary progression of active beings, who cannot live without feeling ; Avho, to be happy, must of ne- cessity diversify their sensations. In proportion as man's wants multi- ply, the means to satisfy them becomes more difficult ; he is obliged to depend on a greater number of his fellow crea- tures ; his interest obliges him to rouse their activity to engage them to concur with his views, consequently he is obli- ged to procure for them those objects by which they can be excited. The savage need only put forth his hand to gather the fruit he finds sufficient for his nourishment. The opulent citizen of a flourishing society is obliged to set numerous hands to work to produce the sumptuous repast and to procure the far- fetched viands become necessary to re- vive his languishing appetite, or to flat- ter his inordinate vanity. From this it will appear, that in the same proportion the wants of man are multiplied, he is obliged to augment the means to satisfy them. Riches are nothing more than the measure of .1 convention, by the as- sistance of which" man is enabled to make a greater number of his fellows concur in the gratification of his de- sires ; by which he is capacitated to invite them, for their own peculiar in- terests, to contribute to his pleasures. What, in fact, does the rich man do, except announce to the needy that he can furnish him with the means of sub- sistence if he consents to lend himself to his will? What does the man in power except show to others that he i-s in a state to supply the requisites to render them happy ? Sovereigns, no- bles, men of wealth, appear to be happy only because they possess the ability, are masters of the motives, sufficient to determine a great number of individuals to occupy themselves with their re- spective felicity. The more things are considered, the more man will be convinced that his false opinions are the true source of his misery ; and the clearer it will appear to him that happiness is so rare only because he attaches it to objects either indifferent or useless to his welfare, or which, when enjoyed, convert them- selves into real evils. Riches are indifferent in themselves, it is only by their application that they either become objects of utility to man, or are rendered prejudicial to his wel- fare. Money, useless to the savage, who understands not its value, is amassed by the miser, (to whom it is useless) lest it should be squandered by the prodigal or by the voluptuary, who makes no other use of it than to I purchase infirmities and regret. Pleas- I ures are nothing for the man who is in- capable of feeling them ; they become real evils when they are too freely in- dulged ; when they are destructive to his health ; when they derange the economy of his machine ; when they make him neglect his duties, and when they render him despicable in the eyes of others. Power is nothing in itself; it- is useless to man if he does not avail himself of it to promote his own pecu- liar felicity : it becomes fatal to him as soon as he abuses it ; it becomes odious whenever he employs it to render oth- ers miserable. For want of being en- lightened on his true interest, the man who enjoys all the means 6f rendering himself completely happy, scarcely ever discovers the secret of making those means truly subservient to his own peculiar felicity. The art of en- joying is that which of all others is least understood : man should learn this art before he begins to desire; the ; earth is covered with individuals Avho-/ only occupy themselves with the care . of procuring the means, without ever being acquainted with the end. Ail the world desire fortune and power, yet | very few indeed are those whom these objects render truly happy. It is quite natural in man, it is ex- tremely reasonable, it is absolutely ne- cessary, to desire those things which can contribute to augment the sum of his felicity. Pleasure, riches, power. are objects worthy his ambition, and deserving his most strenuous efforts, when he has learned how to employ \ them to render his existence really more agreeable. It is impossible tc censure him who desires them, to de- spise him who commands them, to hate THE ERROURS OP MAN. him who possesses them, but when t ^obtain them he employs odious mean; or when after he has obtained them h. makes a pernicious use of them, inju nous to himself, prejudicial to others Let him wish for power, 1st him seek after grandeur, let him be ambitious of reputation, when he can obtain them without making the purchase at the expense of his own repose, or that of the beings with whom he lives: let him desire riches, when he knows how to make a use of them that is truly ad- vantageous for himself, really benefi- cial (or others ; but never let him em- ploy those means to procure them with which he may be obliged to reproach himself, or which may draw upon him the hatred of his associates. Let him al- ways recollect, that his solid happiness should rest its foundations upon his own esteem, and upon the advantages he procures for others ; and above all, that ot all the objects to which his ambition may point, the most imprac- ticable for a being who lives in society, is that of attempting to render himself exclusively happy. CHAPTER XVI. TJie Errours of Man, upon iehat constitutes Happiness, the true Source of his Evil. Remedies that may be applied. REASON by no means forbids man from forming capacious desires; am- bition is a passion useful to his species, when it has for its object the happiness of his race. Great minds are desirous of acting on an extended sphere ; gen- iuses who are powerful, enlightened, beneficent, distribute very widely their benign influence ; they must necessa- rily, in order to promote their own pe- culiar felicity, render great numbers happy. So many princes fail to enjoy true happiness, only because their fee- ble, narrow souls, are obliged to act in a sphere too extensive for their ener- gies : it is thus that by the supineness, the indolence, the incapacity of their chiefs, nations frequently pine in mis- ery, and are often submitted to masters whose exility of mind is as little cal- culated to promote their own iimnedi- afe happiness, as it is to furfher that of their miserable subjects. On the other hand, minds too vehement, too much 149 inflamed, too active, are themselves tormented by the narrow sphere that confines them, and their misplaced ar- dour becomes the scourge of the human race.* A lexander was a monarch, who was as injurious to the earth, as discon- tented with his condition, as the in- dolent despot whom he dethroned. The souls of neither were by any means commensurate with their sphere of action. The happiness of man will never be more than the result of the harmony that subsists between his desires and his circumstances. The sovereign power, to him who knows not how to apply it to the advantage of his citizens, is as nothing ; if fr renders him miserable, it is a real evil ; if it produces the mis- fortune of a portion of the human race, it is a detestable abuse. The most powerful princes are ordinarily such strangers to happiness, their subjects ire commonly so unfortunate only be- cause they first possess all the means of rendering themselves happy, with- out ever giving them activity, or be- cause the only knowledge they have of them is their abuse. A wise man, seated on a throne, would be the most la'ppy of mortals. A monarch is a man for whom his power, let it be of whatever extent, cannot procure other organs, other modes of feeling, than the mealiest of his subjects ; if he has an advantage over them, it is by the grandeur, the variety, the multiplicity of the objects with which h can oc- cupy himself, which, by giving per- petual activity to his mind, can prevent it fronly appendage of the human species ; liat this world is made solely to assem- >le the unhappy ; that human felicity is chimera, or at least a point so liigi- ive, that it is impossible it can be fixed. Thus superstitious and atrabilious nortals, nourished in melancholy, un- easingly see either nature or its author xasperated against the human race: icy suppose that man is the constant bject of heaven's wrath ; that he irrt- 154 THE ERROURS OF MAN. tales it even by his desires, and renders himself criminal by seeking a felicity which is not made for him. Struck with beholding that those objects which he covets in the most lively manner, are never competent to content his heart, they have decried them as abom- inations, as things prejudicial to his in- terest, as odious ; they prescribe him that he should entirely shun them ; they have endeavoured to put to the rout all his passions, without any dis- tinction even of those which are the most useful to himself, the most bene- ficial to those beings with whom he lives : they have been willing that man should render himself insensible should become his own enemy that he should separate himself from his fellow creatures that he should renounce all pleasure that he should refuse happi- ness; in short, that he should cease to be a man ; that he should become un- natural. " Mortals !" have they said, " ye were born to be unhappy ; the au- thor of your existence has destined ye for misfortune ; enter then into his views, and render yourselves miserable. Combat those desires which have feli- city for their object; renounce those pleasures which it is your essence to love ; attach yourselves to nothing in this world ; fly a society that only serves to inflame your imagination, to make you sigh after benefits you ought not to enjoy ; break up the spring of your souls ; repress that activity that seeks to put a period to your sufferings ; suffer, afflict yourselves, groan, be wretched ; such is for you the true road to happi- ness." Blind physicians ! who have mista- ken for a disease the natural state of man! they have not seen that his de- sires and his passions were essential to him ; that to defend him from loving and desiring, is to deprive him of that activity, which is the vital principle of society ; that to tell him to hate and despise himself, is to take from him the most substantive motive that can con- duct him to virtue. It is thus, that, by its supernatural remedies, religion, far from curing evils, has only increased them, and made them more desperate ; in the room of calming his passions, it gives them inveteracy, makes them more dangerous, renders them more venomous, turns that iptoa curse which nature has given him for his preserva- tion and happiness. It is not by extin- guishing the passions of man that he is to be rendered happier, it is by direct- ing them towards useful objects, which, by being truly advantageous to himself, must of necessity be beneficial to others. In despite of the errours which blind the human race; in despite of the ex- travagance of man's religious and polit- ical institutions, notwithstanding the complaints and murmurs he is continu- ally breathing forth against his destiny, there are yet happy individuals on the earth. Man has sometimes the felicity to behold sovereigns animated by the noble passion to render nations flour- ishing and happy; now and then he encounters an Antoninus, a Trajan, a Julian, an Alfred, a Henri IV. ;* he meets with elevated minds, who place their glory in encouraging merit, who rest their happiness in succouring indi- gence, who think it honourable to lend a helping hand to oppressed virtue: he sees genius, occupied with the desire of eliciting the admiration of his fellow - citizens by serving them usefully, ami satisfied with enjoying that happiness he procures for others. Let it not be believed that the man of poverty himself, is excluded from happiness. Mediocrity and indigence frequently procure for him advantages that opulence and grandeur are obliged to acknowledge. The soul of the needy man, always in action, never ceases to form desires, whilst the rich "and the powerful are frequently in the afflicting embarrassment of either not knowing what to wish for, or else of desiring those objects which it is impossible for them to obtain.f The poor man's body, habituated to labour, knows the sweets of repose ; this repose of the body is the most troublesome fatigue to him who is wearied with his idleness. Exercise and frugality procure for the one vigour, health, and contentment; the intemperance and sloth of the other furnish him only with disgust and in- firmities. Indigence sets all the springs of the soul to work ; it is the mother of industry; from its bosom arise genius, * To this scanty list may now be added the names of George Washington and Thomas Jefferson. t Petronius says: Nescio quomoclo bonoe mentis soror eat paupertas. THE ERROURS OF MAN. 155 talents, and mer.it, to which opulence and grandeur pay their homage. In short, the blows of fate find in the poor man a flexible reed, who bends without breaking. Thus nature is not a stepmother to the greater number of her children. He whom fortune has placed in an ob- scure station, is ignorant of that am- bition which devours the courtier; knows nothing of the inquietude which deprives the intriguer of his rest; is a stranger to the remorse, disgust, and weariness of the man, who, enriched with the spoils of a nation, does not know how to turn them to his profit. The more the body labours, the more the imagination reposes itself; it is the diversity of the objects man runs over that kindles it ; it is the satiety of those objects that causes him disgust ; the imagination of the indigent is circum- scribed by necessity: he receives but few ideas, he is acquainted with but few objects ; in consequence he has but little to desire; he contents himself with that little, whilst the entire of na- ture with difficulty suffices to satisfy the insatiable desires, to gratify the imaginary wants of the man plunged in luxury, who has run over and ex- hausted all common objects. Those, whom prejudice contemplates as the most unhappy of men, frequently enjoy advantages more real and much greater those who oppress them, who despise them, t>ut who are nevertheless often reduced to the misery of envying them. Limited desires are a real benefit: the man of meaner condition, in his hum- ble fortune, desires only bread: he obtains it by the sweat of his brow ; he would eat it with pleasure if injustice did not almost always render it bitter to him. By the delirium of governments, ihose who roll in abundance, without for that reason being more happy, dis- pute with the cultivator even the fruits which the earth yields to the labour of his hands. Princes sacrifice their true happiness, as well as that of their states, to these passions, to those caprices, which discourage the people, which plunge their provinces in misery, which make millions unhappy without any advantage to themselves. Tyrants oblige4heir subjects to curse their ex- istence, to abandon labour, and take from them the courage of propagating a progeny who would be as unhappy as their fathers : the excess of oppression sometimes obliges them to revolt and to avenge themselves by wicked out- rages of the injustice it has heaped on their devoted heads. Injustice, by re- ducing indigence to despair, obliges it to seek in crime resources against its misery. An unjust government pro- duces discouragement ; its vexations depopulate a country ; the earth re- mains without culture ; from thence is bred frightful famine, which gives birth to contagion and plague. The misery of a people produce revolutions : soured by misfortunes their minds get into a state of fermentation, and the overthrow of an empire is the necessary effect. It is thus that physics and morals are al- ways connected, or rather are the same thing. If the bad morals of chiefs do not al- ways produce such marked effects, at least they generate slothfulness, of which the effect is to fill society with mendicants and malefactors, whose vi- cious course neither religion nor the terrour of the laws can arrest ; which nothing can induce to remain the un- happy spectators of a welfare they are not permitted to participate. They seek a fleeting happiness at the ex- pense even of their lives, when injus- tice has shut up to them the road of la- bour and industry, which would have rendered them both useful and honest. Let it not then be said, that no gov- ernment can render all its subjects hap- py : without doubt it cannot flatter it- self with contenting the capricious humours of some idle citizens, who are obliged to rack their imagination to ap- pease the disgust arising from lassi- tude : but it can, and it ought to occupy itself with ministering to the real wants of the multitude. A society enjoys all the happiness of which it is susceptible, whenever the greater number of its members are wholesomely fed, decently clothed, comfortably lodged ; in short, when they can without an excess, of toil beyond their strength procure wherewith to satisfy those wants which nature has made necessary to theft ex- istence. Their minds rest contented as soon as they are convinced no power can ravish from them the fruits of their industry, and that they labour for them- selves. By a consequence of human 156 THE ERROURS OF MAN. folly, whole nations are obliged to toil incessantly, to waste their strength, to sweat under their burdens, to drench the earth with their tears, in order to maintain the luxury, to gratify the whims, to support the corruption of a small number of irrational beings, of some few useless men, to whom happi- ness has become impossible, because their bewildered imaginations no longer know any bounds. It is thus that re- ligious and political errours have chang- ed the fair face of nature into a valley of tears. For want of consulting reason, for want of knowing the value of virtue, for want of being instructed in their true interests, for want of being ac- quainted with what constitutes solid and real felicity, the prince and the peo- ple, the rich and the poor, the great and the little, are unquestionably frequently very far removed from content ; never- theless if an impartial eye be glanced over the human race, it will be found to comprise a greater number of bene- fits than of evils. No man is entirely happy, but he is so in detail. Those who make the most bitter complaints of the rigour of their fate, are, however, held in existence by threads frequently imperceptible, which prevent the desire of quitting it. In short, habit lightens to man the burden of his troubles ; grief suspended becomes true enjoy- ment ; every want is a pleasure in the moment when it is satisfied ; freedom from chagrin, the absence of disease, is a happy state which he enjoys secretly and without even perceiving it ; hope, which rarely abandons him entirely, helps him to support the most cruel dis- asters. The prisoner laughs in his irons ; the wearied villager returns sing- ing to his cottage ; in short, the man who calls himself the most unfortunate, never sees death approach without dis- may, at least if despair has not totally disfigured nature in his eyes.* As long as man desires the continua- tion of his being, he has no right to call himself completely unhappy ; whilst hope sustains him, he still enjoys a great benefit. If man was more just in rendering to himself an account of his pleasures and of his pains, he would * See what has been said on suicide in xiv. I acknowledge that the sum of the first exceeds by much the amount of the last ; he would perceive that he keeps a very exact leger of the evil, but a very unfaithful journal of the good : in- deed he would avow, that there are but few days entire.ly unhappy during the whole course of his existence. His periodical wants procure for him the pleasure of satisfying them : his mind is perpetually moved by a thousand objects, of which the variety, the mul- tiplicity, the novelty, rejoices^him, sus- pends his sorrows, diverts his chagrin. His physical evils, are they violent? They are not of long duration ; they conduct him quickly to his end : the sorrows of his mind conduct him to it equally. At the same time that nature refuses him every happiness, she opens to him a door by which he quits life: does he refuse to enter it ? it is that he yet finds pleasure in existence. Are nations reduced to despair? Are they completely miserable ? They have re- course to arms ; and, at the risk of per- ishing, they make the most violent ef- forts to terminate their sufferings. Thus, as he sees so many of his fel- lows cling to life, man ought to con- clude they aie not so unhappy as he thinks. Then let him not exaggerate the evils of the human race ; let him impose silence on that gloomy humour, that persuades him these evils are with- out remedy ; let him diminish by de- grees the number of his errou/s, and his calamities will vanish in the same proportion. He is not to conclude him- self infelicitous, because his heart nev- er ceases to form new desires. Since his body daily requires nourishment, let him infer that it is sound, that it fulfils its functions. As long as he has de- sires, the proper deduction ought to be, that his mind is kept in the necessary activity ; he should also gather from all this that passions are essential to him, that they constitute the happiness of a be- ing who feels, who thinks, who receives ideas, Avho must necessarily love and desire that which promises him a mode of existence analogous to his natural energies. As long as he exists, as long as the spring of his mind maintains its elasticity, this mind desires ; as long as it desires, he experiences the activity which is necessary to him ; as long as he acts, so long he lives. Human life REMEDIES FOR THE EVILS OF MAN. may be compared to a river, of whic the waters succeed each other, driv each other forward, and flow on with out interruption ; . these waters obligei to roll over an unequal bed, encoun ter at intervals those obstacles whici prevent their stagnation; they neve cease to undulate, recoil, and to rusl forward, until they are restored to th ocean of nature. CHAPTER XVII. Those. Ideas which are true, or founded upon Nature, are the only Remedies for the Evil of Man. Recapitulation. Conclusion of the first Part. WHENEVER man ceases to take expe rience for his guide, he falls into er rour. His errours become yet more dangerous and assume a more deter- mined inveteracy, when they are cloth- ed with the sanction of religion : it is then that he hardly ever consents to re- turn into the paths'of truth ; he believes himself deeply interested in no longer seeing clearly that which lies before him; he fancies he has an essential ad- vantage in no longer understanding himself, and that his happiness exacts that he should shut his eyes to truth. If the majority of moral philosophers have mistaken the human heart; if they have deceived themselves upon its diseases and the remedies that are suit- able ; if the remedies they have admin- istered have been inefficacious or even dangerous, it is because they have aban- doned nature, have resisted experience, and have not had sufficient steadiness to consult their reason ; because, having renounced the evidence of their senses, they have only followed the caprices of an imagination either dazzled by enthu- siasm or disturbed by fear, and have preferred the illusions it has held forth to the realities of nature, who never de- ceives. It is for want of having felt, that an intelligent being cannot for an instant lose sight of his own peculiar conser- vation of his particular interests, ei- ther real or fictitious of his own wel- fare, whether permanent or transitory ; in short, of his happiness, either true or false ; it is for want of having con- sidered that desires and passions are essential and natural, that both the one 157 and the other are motions necessary to the mind of man, that the physicians of the human mind have supposed su- pernatural causes for his wanderings and have only applied to his evils topi- cal remedies, either useless or danger- ous. Indeed, in desiring him to stifle his -desires, to combat his propensities, to annihilate his passions, they have done no more than give him steril pre- cepts, at once vague and impracticable ; these vain lessons have influenced no one ; they have at most restrained some few mortals, whom a quiet imagination but feebly solicited to evil ; the terrours with which they have accompanied them, have disturbed the tranquillity of those persons, who were moderate by their nature, without ever arresting the ungovernable temperament of those who were inebriated by their passions, or hurried along by the torrent of habit. In short, the promises of superstition, as well as the menaces it holds forth, have only formed fanatics and enthusiasts, who are either dangerous or useless to society, without ever making man truly virtuous, that is to say, useful to his fellow creatures. These empirics, guided by a blind routine, have not seen that man, as long as he exists, is obliged to feel, to desire, to have passions, and to satisfy them in >roportion to the energy which his or- ganization has given him ; they have not perceived that education planted hese desires in his heart, that habit ooted them, that his government, fre- quently vicious, corroborated their growth, that public opinion stamped hem with its approbation, that experi- ence rendered them necessary, and that o tell men thus constituted to destroy heir passions, was either to plunge hem into despair, or else to order them emedies too revolting for their temper- ment. In the actual state of opulent ocieties, to say to a man who knows y experience that riches procure every leasure, that he must not desire them, lat he must not. make any efforts to ob- ain them, that he ought to detach him- elf from them, is to persuade him to ender himself miserable. To tell an mbitious man not to desire grandeur nd power, which every thing conspires o point out to him as the height of fe- city, is to order him to overturn at ne blow the habitual system of his 153 REMEDIES FOR THE EVILS OP MAN. ideas ; it is to speak to a deaf man. To tell a lover of an impetuous tempera- ment, to stifle his passion for the ob- ject that enchants him, is to make him understand that he ought to renounce his happiness. To oppose religion to such puissant interests, is to combat realities by chimerical speculations. Indeed, if things were examined without prepossession, it would be found that the greater part of the pre- cepts inculcated by religion, or which fanatical and supernatural morals give to man, are as ridiculous as they are impossible to be put into practice. To interdict passion to man, is to desire of him not to be a human creature ; to counsel an individual of violent ima- gination to moderate his desires, is to advise him to change his temperament to request his blood to flow more sluggishly. To tell a man to renounce his habits, is to be willing that a citi- zen, accustomed to clothe himself, should consent to walk quite naked ; it would avail as much to desire him to change the lineament of his face, to destroy his configuration, to extinguish his imagination, to alter the course of his fluids, as to command him not to have passions analogous with his natu- ral energy, or to lay aside those which habit and his circumstances have con- verted into wants.* Such are, how- ever, the so much boasted remedies which the greater number of moral philosophers apply to human depravity. Is it then surprising they do not pro- duce the desired effect, or that they only reduce man to a state of despair, by the effervescence that results from the continual conflict which they excite between the passions of his heart, be- tween his vices and his virtues, be- tween his habits and those chimerical fears with which superstition is at all times ready to overwhelm him ? The vices of society, aided by the objects * It is evident that these counsels, extrava- gant as they are, have been suggested to man by all religions. The Indian, the Japanese, the Mahometan, the Christian, the Jew, each, according to his superstition, has made per- fection to consist in fasting, mortification, ab- stinence from the most rational pleasures, re- tirement from the busy world, and in labour- ing without ceasing to counteract nature. Among the Pagans the priests of the Syrian Goddess were not more rational their piety led them to mutilate themselves. of which it avails itself to whet the desires of man, the pleasures, the riches, the grandeur, which his government holds forth to him as so many seductive magnets, the advantage which educa- tion, the benefits, example, public opin- ion render dear to him, attract him on 1 one side ; whilst a gloomy morality vain- ly solicits him on the other ; thus, reli- gion plunges him into misery holds a ; violent struggle with his heart, without ever gaining the victory ; when by ac- cident it does prevail against so many united forces, it renders him unhappy ! it completely destroys the spring of his mind. Passions are the true counterpoise to passions ; then, let him not seek to destroy them, but let him endeavour to direct them ; let him balance those i which are prejudicial, by those which are useful to society. Reason, the fruit of experience, is only the art of choos- ing those passions to which, for his own peculiar happiness, he ought to listen. Education is the true art of 1 disseminating, the proper method of cultivating advantageous passions in the heart of man. Legislation is the art of restraining dangerous passions, and of exciting those which may be conducive to the public welfare. Reli- gion is only the art of planting and of nourishing in the mind of man those chimeras, those illusions, those impos- tures, those incertitudes, from whence spring passions fatal to himself as well as to others : it is only by bearing up with fortitude against these, that he can place himself on the road to hap- piness, f Reason and morals cannot effect any thing on mankind, if they do not point out to each individual, that his true interest is attached to a conduct useful to others and beneficial to him- self; this conduct to be useful must conciliate for him the favour of those beings who are necessary to his happi- f To these we may add philosophy, which is the art of advocating truth, of renouncing errour, of contemplating reality, of drawing wisdom from experience, of cultivating man's nature to his own felicity, by teaching him to contribute to that of his associates ; in short, it is reason, education, and legislation, united to further the great end of human ex- istence, by causing the passions of man to flow in a current genial to his own happi- ness. REMEDIES FOR THE EVILS OF MAN. ness: it is then for the interest of man- kind, for the happiness of the human race, it is for the esteem of himself, for the love of his fellows, for the advan- tages which ensue, that education in early life should kindle the imagina- tion of the citizen ; this is the true means of obtaining those happy results with which habit should familiarize him, whiifh public opinion should ren- der dear to his heart, for which exam- ple ought continually to rouse his fa- culties. Government, by the aid of recompenses, ought to encourage him to follow this plan ; by visiting crime with punishment, it ought to deter those who are willing to interrupt it. Thus the hope of a true welfare, the fear of real evil, will be passions suit- able to countervail those which, by their impetuosity, would injure society ; these last will at least become very rare, if instead of feeding man's mind with unintelligible speculations, in lieu of vibrating on his ears words void of sense, he is only spoken to of realities, only shown those interests which are in unison with truth. Man is frequently so wicked, only because he almost 'always feels him- self interested in being so ; let him be more enlightened and more happy, and he will necessarily become better. An equitable government, a vigilant ad- ministration will presently fill the state with honest citizens; it will hold forth to them present reasons, real and pal- pable, to be virtuous ; it will instruct them in their duties; it will foster them with its cares ; it will allure them by the assurance of their own pecuHar happiness ; its promises and its mena- ces faithfully executed, will, unques- tionably, have much more weight than those of superstition, which never ex- hibits to their view other than illusory benefits, fallacious punishments, Avhich the man hardened in wickedness will doubt every time he finds an interest in questioning them ; present motives will tell more home to his heart, than those which are distant and at best uncer- tain. The vicious and the wicked are so common upon the earth, so pertina- cious in their evil courses, so attached to their irregularities, only because there are but few governments that make man feel the advantage of being just, honest, and benevolent; on the contrary, there is hardly any place where the most powerful interests do not solicit him to crime by favouring the propensities of a vicious organiza- tion, which nothing has attempted to rectify or lead towards virtue.* A sav- age, who in his horde, knows not the value of money, certainly would not commit a crime ; if transplanted into civilized society, he will presently learn to desire it, will make efforts to obtain it, and, if he can without danger, finish by stealing it, above all if he had not been taught to respect the property of the beings who environ him. The savage and the child are precisely in the same state ; it is the negligence of society, of those intrusted with their education, that render both the one and the other wicked. The son of a noble, from his infancy learns to desire power, at a riper age he becomes ambi- tious ; if he has the address to insinu- ate himself into favour, he becomes wicked, and he may be so with impu- nity. It is not therefore nature that makes man wicked, they are his in- stitutions which determine him to vice. The infant brought up amongst robbers, can generally become no- thing but a malefactor; if he had been reared with honest people, the chance is he would have been a virtu- ous man. If the source be traced of that pro- found ignorance in which man is with respect to his morals, in the motives that can give volition to his will, it will be found in those false ideas which the greater number of speculators have formed to themselves of human nature. The science of morals has become an enigma, which it is impossible to un- ravel, because man has made himself double, has distinguished his mind from his body, supposed it of a nature different from all known beings, with modes of action, with properties dis- tinct from all other bodies; because he has emancipated this mind from phys- ical laws, in order to submit it to capri- cious laws derived from imaginary re- gions. Metaphysicians, seized upon these gratuitous suppositions, and by- dint of subtilizing them, have.rendered * Sallust says. Nemo gratuito malus est. We can say in the same manner. Nemo gra- tuito bonus est 160 REMEDIES FOR THE EVILS CF MAN. them completely unintelligible. These moralist* have not perceived, that mo- tion is essential to the mind as well as to the living body ; that both the one and the other are never moved but by material, by physical objects ; that the wants of each regenerate themselves unceasingly ; that the wants of the mind, as well as those of the body, are purely physical ; that the most inti- mate, the most constant connexion subsists between the mind and the body, or rather they have been umvil- ling to allow, that they are only the same thing considered under different points of view. Obstinate in their supernatural or unintelligible opinions, they have refused to open their .eyes, which would have convinced them, that the body in suffering rendered the mind miserable ; that the mind afflict- ed undermined the body and brought it to decay ; that both the pleasures and agonies of the mind, have an influence ever the body, either plunge it into sloth or give it activity : they have rather chosen to believe, that the mind draws its thoughts, whether pleasant or gloomy, from its own peculiar sour- ces ; while the fact is, that it derives its ideas only from material objects, that strike on the physical organs ; that it is neither determined to gayety nor led on to sorrow, but by the actual state, whether permanent or transitory, in which the fluids and solids of the body are found. In short, they have been loath to acknowledge, that the mind, purely passive, undergoes the same changes which the body experi- ences ; that it is only moved by its in- tervention, acts only by its assistance, receives its sensations, its perceptions, forms its ideas, derives either its happi- ness, or its mi'-Ty, from physical ob- jects, through the medium of the or- gans of which the body is composed, frequently without its own cognizance, and often in despite of itself. By a consequence of these opinions,, connected with marvellous system*, or systems invented to justify them, they have supposed the human mind to be a free agent; that is to say that it has the facuUy of moving itself that it enjoys the privilege of acting indepen- dent of the impulse received from ex- terior objects through the organs of the body; that regardless of these impul- sions, it can even resist them, and fol- low its own direction by its own enerr gios ; that it is not only different in its nature from all other beings, but has also a separate mode of action ; in oth- er words, that it is an isolated point, which is not submitted to that uninter- rupted chain of motion, which bodies communicate to each other in nature whose parts are always in action. Smitten with their sublime notions, these speculators were not aware, that in thus distinguishing the soul or'mind, from the body and from all known be- ings, they rendered it an impossibility to form any true idea of it ; they were unwilling to perceive the perfect anal- ogy which is found between the man- ner of the mind's action, and that by which the body is affected ; they shut their eyes to the necessary and contin- ual correspondence which is found be- tween the mind and the body ; they would not see that like the body it is subjected to the motion of attraction and repulsion, which is ascribable to qualities inherent in those physical substances which give play to the or- gans of the body; that the volition of its will, the activity of its passions, the continual regeneration of its de- sires, are never more than consequences of that activity which is produced on the body by material objects \vhich are not under its controul, and that these objects render it either happy or miser- able, active or languishing, contented or discontented, in despite of itself and of all the efforts it is capable of making to render it otherwise : they have rath- er chosen to seek in the heavens for fictitious poAvers to set it in motion ; they have held forth to man only ima- ginary interests : under the pretext of procuring for him an ideal happiness, he has been prevented from labouring to his true felicity, which has been stu- diously withheld from his knowledge : his regards have been fixed upon the heavens, that he might lose sight qf the earth: truth has been concealed from him, and it has been pretended he would be rendered happy by dint of ter- rours, by means of phantoms, and of chimeras. In short, hoodwinked and blind, he was only gu-'ded through the flexuous paths of life by men as blind as himself, where both the one and the other were lost in the maze. REMEDIES FOR THE EVILS OF MAN. From every thing which has been hitherto said, it evidently results that all the errours of mankind, of what- ever nature they may be, arise from man's having renounced reason, quit- ted experience, and refused the evi- dence of his senses, that he might be guided by imagination, frequently de- ceitful, and by authority, always s'usp cious. Man will ever mistake his tru happiness, as long as he neglects t study nature, to investigate her immu table laws, to seek in her alone th remedies for those evils which are th consequence of his present errours he will be an enigma to himself, a long as he shall believe himsel? double and that lie is moved by an inconceiv able power, of the laws and nature of which he is ignorant. His intellectua as well as his moral faculties will re main unintelligible to him if he doe not contemplate them with the same eyes as he does his corporeal qualities and does not view them as submittec in every thing to the same regulations I he system of his pretended free agency is without support ; experience contradicts it every instant, and proves that he never ceases to be under the influence of necessity in all his ac- tions ; this truth, far from being dan- gerous to man. far from being destruc- tive of his morals, furnishes him with their true basis, by making him feel the necessity of those relations which subsist between sensible beings united in society, who have congregated with a view of uniting their common efforts for their reciprocal felicity. From the necessity of these relations, spring the necessity of his duties ; these point out to him the sentiments of love which he should accord to virtuous conduct, or that aversion he should have for what is vicious. From hence the true foundation of moral obligation, will be obvious, which is only the necessity of taking means to obtain the end man proposes to himself by uniting in so- ciety, in which each individual for his own peculiar interest, his own particu- lar happiness, his own personal secu- rity, is obliged to display and to hold a conduct suitable to the preservation of the community, and to contribute by lis actions to the happiness of the whole. In a word, it is upon the ne- :essary action and reaction of the hu- No. VI. 01 161 man will, upon the necessary attrac- tion and repulsion of man's mbd, that all his morals are bottomed: ft is the unison of his will, the concert of his actions, that maintain society : it is rendered miserable by his discordance ; it is dissolved by his want of union. From what has been said it may be concluded, that the names under which man has designated the concealed causes acting in nature, and their vari- ous effects, are never more than neces- sity considered under different points of view. It will be found, that what he calls order, is a necessary conse- quence of causes and effects, of which he sees, or believes he sees, the entire connexi9n, the complete routine, and which pleases him as a whole when he finds it conformable to his .existence. In like manner it will be seen that what he calls confusion, is a conse- quence of like necessary causes and effects, which he thinks unfavourable to himself, or but little suitable to his being. He has designated by the name of intelligence, those necessary causes that necessarily operate the chain of events which he comprises under the term order. He has called divinity, those necessary but invisible causes which give play to nature, in which every thing acts according to mmutable and necessary laws : des- iny or fatality, the necessary connex- on of those unknown causes and ef- ects which he beholds in the world r hance, those effects which he is not ble to foresee, or of which he ignores he necessary connexion with their auses. Finally, intellectual and mo- al faculties, those effects and those modifications necessary to an organiz- ed being, whom he has supposed to be moved by an inconceivable agent, that he has believed distinguished from his body, of a nature totally different from it, and which he has designated by the word soul In consequence, he has believed tnis agent immortal, and not dissoluble like the body. It has been shown that the marvel- lous doctrine of another life, is founded upon gratuitous suppositions, contra- dicted by reflection. It has been prov- ed, that the hypothesis is not only use- less to man's morals, but again, that it is calculated to palsy his exertions, to divert him from actively pursuing the REMEDIES FOR THE EVILS OF MAN. 162 true road to his own happiness, to fill him with romantic caprices, and to in- ebriate him with opinions prejudicial to his tranquillity ; in short, to lull to slumber the vigilance of legislators, by dispersing them from giving to educa- tion, to the institutions, to the laws of society, all that attention which it is the duty and for his interest they should bestow. It must have been felt, that politics has unaccountably rested itself upon opinions little capable of satisfy- ing those passions which every thing conspires to kindle in the heart of man, who ceases to view the future, while the present seduces and hurries him along. It has been shown, that con- tempt of death is an advantageous sen- timent, calculated to inspire man's mind with courage to undertake that which may be truly useful to society. In short, from what has preceded, it will be obvious what is competent to conduct man to happiness, and also what are the obstacles that errour op- poses to his felicity. Let us not then be accused of demo- lishing without rebuilding, with com- bating errour without substituting truth, with sapping at one and the same time the foundations of religion and of sound morals. The last is necessary to man ; it is founded upon his nature ; its du- ties are certain, they must last as long as the human race remains ; it imposes obligations on him, because, without it, neither individuals nor society could be able to subsist, either obtain or en- joy those advantages which nature ob- liges them to desire. Listen then, O man ! to those morals which are established upon experience and upon the necessity of things ; do not lend thine ear to those superstitions founded upon reveries, imposture, am the capricious whims of a disorderec imagination. Follow the lessons of those humane and gentle morals, which conduct man to virtue by the path of happiness : turn a deaf ear to the ineffi cacious cries of religion which ren ders man really unhappy ; which can never make him reverence virtue, which it paints in hideous and hateful colours in short, let him see if reason, withou the assistance of a rival who prohibit its use, will not more surely conduc him towards that great end which i the object and tendency of all his views. Indeed, what benefit has the human ace hitherto drawn from those sublime md supernatural notions, with which heology has fed mortals during so many ages 7 All those phantoms con- ured up by ignorance and imagination ; all those hypotheses, as subtile as they are irrational, from which experience s banished ; all those words devoid of meaning with which languages are crowded; all those fantastical hopes and panic terrours, which have been nought to operate on the will of man, lave they rendered man better, more jnlightened to his duties, more faithful in their performance? Have those marvello'us systems, or those sophis- tical inventions by which they have icen supported, carried conviction to lis mind, reason into his conduct, vir- tue into his heart? Alas! all these things have done nothing more than plunge the human understanding into that darkness, from which it is difficult to be withdrawn ; sown in man's heart the most dangerous errours, of which it is scarcely possible to divest him ; given birth to those fatal passions, in which may be found the true source of those evils with which his species is afflicted. Cease then, O mortal ! to let thyself be disturbed with phantoms, which thine own imagination or imposture hath created. Renounce thy vague hopes; disengage thyself from thine overwhelming fears, follow without in- quietude the necessary routine which nature has marked out for thee ; strew the road with flowers if thy destiny permits ; remove, if thou art able, the thorns scattered over it. Do not at- tempt to plunge thy views into an im- penetrable futurity ; its obscurity ought to be sufficient to prove to thee that it is either useless or dangerous to fa- thom. Only think then, of making thyself happ'y in that existence which is "known to thee. If thou wouldst preserve thyself, be temperate, mode- rate, and reasonable : if thou seekest to render thy existence durable, be not prodigal of 'pleasure. Abstain from every thing that can be hurtful to thyself, or to others. Be truly in- telligent ; that is to say, learn to es- teem thyself, to preserve thy being, to fulfil that end which at each moment thou proposest to thyself. Be Virtu- MAN'S IDEAS UPON THE DIVINITY. 163 ous, to the end that thou mayest ren- der thyself solidly happy, that thou mayest enjoy the affections, secure the esteem, partake of the assistance of those beings whom nature has made necessary to thine own peculiar feli- city. Even when they should be un- just, render thyself worthy of thine own love and applause, and thou shall live content, thy serenity shall not be disturbed : the end of thy career shall not slander a life which will be ex- empted from remorse. Death will be to thee the door to a new existence, a new order in which thou wilt be sub- mitted, as thou art at present, to the eternal laws ojt fate, which ordains, that to live happy here below, thou must make others happy/ Suffer thy- self, then, to be drawn gently along thy journey, until thou shalt sleep peaceably on that bosom which has given thee birth. For thou, wicked unfortunate ! who art found in continual contradiction with thyself; thou whose disorderly machine can neither accord with thine own peculiar nature, nor with that of thine associates ; whatever may be thy crimes, whatever may be thy fears of punishment in another life, thou art at least already cruelly punished in this ? Do not thy follies, thy shame- ful habits, thy debaucheries, damage thine health ? Dost thou not linger out life in disgust, fatigued with thine own excesses? Does not listlessness, pun- ish thee for thy satiated passions ? Has not thy vigour, thy gayety, already yielded to feebleness, to infirmities, and to regret 1 Do not thy vices every day dig thy grave? Every time thou hast stained thyself with crime, hast thou dared without horrour to return into thy- self? Hast thou not found remorse, terrour, shame, established in thine heart? Hast thou not dreaded the scrutiny of thy fellow man ? Hast thou not trembled when alone, that. truth, so terrible for thee, should unveil thy dark transgressions, throw into light thine enormous iniquities ? Do not then any longer fear to part with thine existence, it will at least put an end to those richiy merited torments thou hast inflicted on thyself; death, in delivering the earth from an incom- modious burden, will also deliver thee from thy most cruel enemy, thyself. CHAPTER XVIII. The Origin of Man' 's Ideas upon Hie Divinity. IF man possessed the courage to recur to the source of those opinions which are most deeply engraven on his brain ; if he rendered to himself a faith- ful account of the reasons which make him hold these opinions as sacred ; if he coolly examined the basis of his hopes, the foundation of his fears, he would find that it very frequently happens, those objects, or those ideas which move him most powerfully, either have no real existence, are words devoid of meaning, or phantoms engendered by a disordered imagination, modified by ignorance. Distracted by contending passions, which prevent him from either reasoning justly, or consulting expe- rience in his judgment, his intellectual faculties are thrown into confusion, his ideas bewildered. A sensible being placed in a nature where every part is in motion, has va- rious feelings, in consequence of either the agreeable or disagreeable effects which he is obliged to experience; in consequence he either finds himself happy or miserable; and, according to the quality of the sensations excited in him, he will love or fear, seek after or fly from, the real or supposed causes of such marked effects operated on his machine. But if he is ignorant or des- titute of experience, he will frequently deceive himself as to these causes ; and he will neither have a true know- ledge of their energy, nor a clear idea of their mode of acting: thus until re- iterated experience shall have formed his judgment, he will be involved in trouble and incertitude. Man is a being who brings with him nothing into the world, save an apti- tude to feeling in a manner more or less lively according to his individual organization : he has no knowledge of any of the causes that act upon him : by degrees his faculty of feeling dis- covers to him their various qualities ; he learns to judge of them; time fa- miliarizes him with their properties; he attaches ideas to them, according to the manner in which they have affect- ed him ; and these ideas are correct or otherwise, in a ratio to the soundness of his organic structure, and in propor- tion as these organs are competent to 164 THE ORIGIN OF afford him sure and reiterated experi- 1CG The first movements of man are marked by his wants ; that is to say, the first impulse he receives is to con- serve his existence; this he would not be able to maintain without the concur- rence of many analogous causes: these wants in a sensible being manifest themselves by a general languor a sinking a confusion in Ins machine which^ives him the consciousness ot a painful sensation: this derangement subsists and is augmented, until the cause suitable to remove it re-estab- lishes the harmony so necessary to the exigence of the human frame. VV ant, therefore, is the first evil man experi- ences ; nevertheless' it is requisite to the maintenance of his existence Was it not for this derangement ot his body, which obliges him to furnish its remedy, he would not be warned of the necessity of preserving the existence he has received. Without wants man would be an insensible machine, simi- lar to a vegetable, and like it he would be incapable of preserving himself or of usin* the means required to conserve his being. To his wants are to be as- cribed his passions, his desires the ex- ercise of his corporeal and intellectual faculties: they are his wants that oblige him to think, to will, to act ; it is to satisfy them, or rather toput an end to the painful sensations excited by their presence, that, according to his capacity, to the energies which are pe- culiar to himself, he exerts the activity of his bodily strength, or displays the ex- tensive powers of his mind. His wants being perpetual, he is obliged to labour without relaxation to procure objects competent to satisfy them. In a word, it is owing to his multipliedwants that man's energy is kept in a state ot con- tinual activity : as soon as he ceases to have wants, he falls into inaction- becomes listless declines into apathy sinks into a languor that is incom- modious to his feelings or prejudicial to his existence : this lethargic state ot weariness lasts until new wants rouse his dormant faculties, and destroy the sluggishness to which he had become From hence it will be obvious that evil is necessary to man ; without it he would neither be in a condition to MAN'S IDEAS . know that which injures him, to avoid its presence, or to seek his own wel- fare : he would differ in nothing from insensible, unorganized beings, it those evanescent evils which he calls wants. did not oblige him to call forth his fac- ulties, to set his energies in motion, to cull experience, to compare objects, tc discriminate them, to separate those which have the capabilities to injure him from those which possess the means to benefit him. In short, with- out evil man would be ignorant of